Versione ebook di Readme.it powered by Softwarehouse.it    ACTIVE SERVICE
by Steven Crane
CHAPTER I.
MARJORY walked pensively along the hall. In the cool
shadows made by the palms on the window ledgeher face
wore the expression of thoughtful melancholy expected on the
faces of the devotees who pace in cloistered gloom. She halted
before a door at the end of the hall and laid her hand on the
knob. She stood hesitatingher head bowed. It was evident
that this mission was to require great fortitude.
At last she opened the door. " Father she began at once.
There was disclosed an elderly, narrow-faced man seated at a
large table and surrounded by manuscripts and books. The
sunlight flowing through curtains of Turkey red fell sanguinely
upon the bust of dead-eyed Pericles on the mantle. A little
clock was ticking, hidden somewhere among the countless
leaves of writing, the maps and broad heavy tomes that
swarmed upon the table.
Her father looked up quickly with an ogreish scowl.
Go away! he cried in a rage. " Go away. Go away. Get out "
 He seemed on the point of arising to eject the visitor. It was 
plain to her that he had been interrupted in the writing of one 
of his sentences, ponderous, solemn and endless, in which wandered
multitudes of homeless and friendless prepositions, adjectives 
looking for a parent, and quarrelling nouns, sentences which no 
longer symbolised the languageform of thought but which had about 
them a quaint aroma from the dens of long-dead scholars. Get out
snarled the professor.
Father,faltered the girl. Either because his formulated
thought was now completely knocked out of his mind by his
own emphasis in defending itor because he detected
something of portent in her expressionhis manner suddenly
changedand with a petulant glance at his writing he laid down
his pen and sank back in his chair to listen. " Wellwhat is it
my child ? "
The girl took a chair near the window and gazed out upon
the snow-stricken campuswhere at the moment a group of
students returning from a class room were festively hurling
snow-balls. " I've got something important to tell youfather
said she,
but i don't quite know how to say it.
Something important ? repeated the professor. He was
not habitually interested in the affairs of his familybut this
proclamation that something important could be connected
with themfilled his mind with a capricious interest. "Well
what is itMarjory ? "
She replied calmly: " Rufus Coleman wants to marry me."
What?demanded the professor loudly. "Rufus Coleman.
What do you mean? "
The girl glanced furtively at him. She did not seem to be able
to frame a suitable sentence.
As for the professorhe hadlike all men both thoughtless
and thoughtfultold himself that one day his daughter would
come to him with a tale of this kind. He had never forgotten that
the little girl was to be a womanand he had never forgotten
that this talllithe creaturethe present Marjorywas a woman.
He had been entranced and confident or entranced and
apprehensive according' to the time. A man focussed upon
astronomythe pig market or social progressionmay
nevertheless have a secondary mind which hovers like a spirit
over his dahlia tubers and dreams upon the mystery of their
slow and tender revelations. The professor's secondary mind
had dwelt always with his daughter and watched with a faith
and delight the changing to a woman of a certain fat and
mumbling babe. Howeverhe now saw this machinethis self-
sustainingself-operative lovewhich had run with the ease of a
clocksuddenly crumble to ashes and leave the mind of a great
scholar staring at a calamity. " Rufus Coleman he repeated,
stunned. Here was his daughter, very obviously desirous of
marrying Rufus Coleman. Marjory he cried in amazement 
and fear, what possessesyou? Marry Rufus Colman?"
The girl seemed to feel a strong sense of relief at his prompt
recognition of a fact. Being freed from the necessity of making a
flat declarationshe simply hung her head and blushed
impressively. A hush fell upon them. The professor stared long
at his daugh. ter. The shadow of unhappiness deepened upon
his face. " MarjoryMarjory he murmured at last. He had
tramped heroically upon his panic and devoted his strength to
bringing thought into some kind of attitude toward this terrible
fact. I am-I am surprised he began. Fixing her then with a
stern eye, he asked: Why do you wish to marry this man? You
with your opportunities of meeting persons of intelligence. And
you want to marry-" His voice grew tragic. "You want to marry
the Sunday editor of the New York Eclipse."
 It is not so very terrible, is it?said Marjory sullenly.
Wait a moment; don't talk,cried the professor. He arose
and walked nervously to and frohis hands flying in the air. He
was very red behind the ears as when in the Classroom some
student offended him. " A gamblera sporter of fine clothesan
expert on champagnea polite loafera witness knave who edits
the Sunday edition of a great outrage upon our sensibilities.
You want to marry himthis man? Marjoryyou are insane. This 
fraud who asserts that his work is intelligentthis fool comes
here to my house and-"
He became aware that his daughter was regarding him coldly.
I thought we had best have all this part of it over at once,she
remarked.
He confronted her in a new kind of surprise. The little keen-
eyed professor was at this time imperialon the verge of a
majestic outburst. " Be still he said. Don't be clever with your
father. Don't be a dodger. Orif you aredon't speak of it to me. I
suppose this fine young man expects to see me personally ? "
 He was coming to-morrow,replied Marjory. She began to
weep. " He was coming to-morrow."
 Um,said the professor. He continued his pacing while
Marjory wept with her head bowed to the arm of the chair. His
brow made the three dark vertical crevices well known to his
students. Some. times he glowered murderously at the
photographs of ancient temples which adorned the walls. "My
poor child he said once, as he paused near her, to think I
never knew you were a fool. I have been deluding myself. It has
been my fault as much as it has been yours. I will not readily
forgive myself."
The girl raised her face and looked at him. Finallyresolved
to disregard the dishevelment wrought by tears
she presented a desperate front with her wet
eyes and flushed cheeks. Her hair was disarrayed. "I don't see
why you can call me a fool she said. The pause before this
sentence had been so portentous of a wild and rebellious
speech that the professor almost laughed now. But still the
father for the first time knew that he was being un-dauntedly
faced by his child in his own library, in the presence Of 372
pages of the book that was to be his masterpiece. At the back
of his mind he felt a great awe as if his own youthful spirit had
come from the past and challenged him with a glance. For a
moment he was almost a defeated man. He dropped into a chair.
Does your mother know of this " " he asked mournfully.
Yes,replied the girl. "She knows. She has been trying to
make me give up Rufus."
Rufus,cried the professor rejuvenated by anger.
Well, his name is Rufus,said the girl.
But please don't call him so before me,said the father with
icy dignity. " I do not recognise him as being named Rufus.
That is a contention of yours which does not arouse my
interest. I know him very well as a gambler and a drunkardand
if incidentallyhe is named RufusI fail to see any importance
to it."
 He is not a gambler and he is not a drunkard,she said.
 Um. He drinks heavily-that is well known. He gambles. 
He plays cards for money--more than he
possesses-at least he did when he was in college.
 You said you liked him when he was in college.
 So I did. So I did,answered the professor sharply. " I
often find myself liking that kind of a boy in college. Don't I
know them-those lads with their beer and their poker games in
the dead of the night with a towel hung over the keyhole. Their
habits are often vicious enoughbut something remains in them
through it all and they may go away and do great things. This
happens. We know it. It happens with confusing insistence. It
destroys theo- ries. There-there isn't much to say about it. And
sometimes we like this kind of a boy better than we do the-the
others. For my part I know of many a purepious and fine-
minded student that I have positively loathed from a personal
point-of-view. But he added, this Rufus Colemanhis life in
college and his life sincego to prove how often we get off the
track. There is no gauge of collegiate conduct whateveruntil we
can get evidence of the man's work in the world. Your precious
scoundrel's evidence is now all in and he is a failureor worse."
 You are not habitually so fierce in judging people,said
the girl.
I would be if they all wanted to marry my daughter,
rejoined the professor. " Rather than let that man make love to
you-or even be within a short railway journey of you
I'll cart you off to Europe this winter and keep you there 
until you forget. If you persist in this silly fancyI shall at once 
become medieval."
Marjory had evidently recovered much of her composure. 
Yes, father, new climates are alway's supposed to cure one,
she remarked with a kind of lightness.
 It isn't so much the old expedient,said the professor
musinglyas it is that I would be afraid to leave you herewith
no protection against that drinking gambler and gambling
drunkard.
 Father, I have to ask you not to use such terms in speaking
of the man that I shall marry.
There was a silence. To all intentsthe professor remained
unmoved. He smote the tips of his fingers thoughtfully
together. " Ye-es he observed. That sounds reasonable from
your standpoint." His eyes studied her face in a long and
steady glance. He arose and went into the hall. When he
returned he wore his hat and great coat. He took a book and
some papers from the table and went away.
Marjory walked slowly through the halls and up to her room.
From a window she could see her father making his way across
the campus labouriously against the wind and whirling snow.
She watched itthis little black figurebent forwardpatient
steadfast. It was an inferior fact that her father was one of the
famous scholars of the generation. To herhe was now a little
old man facing the wintry winds. Recollect. ing herself and
Rufus Coleman she began to weep againwailing amid the ruins
of her tumbled hopes. Her skies had turned to paper and her
trees were mere bits of green sponge. But amid all this woe
appeared the little black image of her father making its way
against the storm.
CHAPTER II.
IN a high-walled corrider of one of the college buildingsa
crowd of students waited amid jostlings and a loud buzz of talk.
Suddenly a huge pair of doors flew open and a wedge of young
men inserted itself boisterously and deeply into the throng.
There was a great scuffle attended by a general banging of
books upon heads. The two lower classes engaged in herculean
play while members of the two higher classesstanding aloof
devoted themselves strictly to the encouragement of whichever
party for a moment lost ground or heart. This was in order to
prolong the conflict.
The combatwaged in the desperation of proudest youth
waxed hot and hotter. The wedge had been instantly smitten
into a kind of block of men. It had crumpled into an irregular 
square and on three sides it was now assailed with remarkable 
ferocity. 
It was a matter of wall meet wall in terrific rushesduring 
which lads could feel their very hearts leaving them in the 
compress of friends and foes. They on the outskirts upheld the 
honour of their classes by squeezing into paper thickness the 
lungs of those of their fellows who formed the centre of the 
melee 
In some way it resembled a panic at a theatre. 
The first lance-like attack of the Sophomores had been 
formidablebut the Freshmen outnumbering their enemies and 
smarting from continual Sophomoric oppressionhad swarmed 
to the front like drilled collegians and given the arrogant foe the 
first serious check of the year. Therefore the tall Gothic 
windows which lined one side of the corridor looked down 
upon as incomprehensible and enjoyable a tumult as could 
mark the steps of advanced education. The Seniors and juniors 
cheered themselves ill. Long freed from the joy of such 
meetingstheir only means for this kind of recreation was to 
involve the lower classesand they had never seen the victims 
fall to with such vigour and courage. Bits of printed leaves
torn note-booksdismantled collars and cravatsall floated to 
the floor beneath the feet of the warring hordes. There were no 
blows; it was a battle of pressure. It was a deadly pushing 
where the leaders on either side often suffered the most cruel 
and sickening agony caught thus between phalanxes of 
shoulders with friend as well as foe contributing to the pain. 
Charge after charge of Freshmen beat upon the now 
compact and organised Sophomores. Thenfinallythe rock 
began to give slow way. A roar came from the Freshmen and 
they hurled themselves in a frenzy upon their betters. 
To be under the gaze of the juniors and Seniors is 
to be in sight of all menand so the Sophomores at this 
important moment laboured with the desperation of the halfdoomed 
to stem the terrible Freshmen. 
In the kind of gameit was the time when bad tempers came 
strongly to the frontand in many Sophomores' minds a 
thought arose of the incomparable insolence of the Freshmen. 
A blow was struck; an infuriated Sophomore had swung an 
arm high and smote a Freshman. 
Although it had seemed that no greater noise could be made 
by the given numbersthe din that succeeded this manifestation 
surpassed everything. The juniors and Seniors immediately set 
up an angry howl. These veteran classes projected themselves 
into the middle of the fightbuffeting everybody with small 
thought as to merit. This method of bringing peace was as 
militant as a landslidebut they had much trouble before they 
could separate the central clump of antagonists into its parts. 
A score of Freshmen had cried out: "It was Coke. Coke punched 
him. Coke." A dozen of them were tempestuously endeavouring 
to register their protest against fisticuffs by means of an 
introduction of more fisticuffs. 
The upper classmen were swiftharsh and hard. "Comenow
Freshiesquit it. Get backget backd'y'hear?" With a wrench of 
muscles they forced themselves in front of Cokewho was 
being blindly defended by his classmates from intensely earnest 
attacks by outraged Freshmen. 
These meetings between the lower classes at the door of a 
recitation room were accounted quite comfortable and idle 
affairsand a blow delivered openly and in hatred fractured a 
sharply defined rule of conduct. The corridor was in a hubbub. 
Many Seniors and Juniorsbursting from old and iron discipline
wildly clamoured that some Freshman should be given the 
privilege of a single encounter with Coke. The Freshmen 
themselves were frantic. They besieged the tight and dauntless 
circle of men that encompassed Coke. None dared confront the 
Seniors openlybut by headlong rushes at auspicious moments 
they tried to come to quarters with the rings of dark-browed 
Sophomores. It was no longer a festivala game; it was a riot. 
Cokewild-eyedpallid with furya ribbon of blood on his chin
swayed in the middle of the mob of his classmatescomrades 
who waived the ethics of the blow under the circumstance of 
being obliged as a corps to stand against the scorn of the whole 
collegeas well as against the tremendous assaults of the 
Freshmen. Shamed by their own manbut knowing full well the 
right time and the wrong time for a palaver of regret and 
disavowalthis battalion struggled in the desperation of 
despair. Once they were upon the verge of making unholy 
campaign against the interfering Seniors. This fiery 
impertinence was the measure of their state. 
It was a critical moment in the play of the college. Four or 
five defeats from the Sophomores during the fall had taught the 
Freshmen much. They had learned the comparative 
measurementsand they knew now that their prowess was ripe 
to enable them to amply revenge what wasaccording to their 
standardsan execrable deed by a man who had not the virtue 
to play the rough gamebut was obliged to resort to uncommon 
methods. In shortthe Freshmen were almost out of controland 
the Sophomores debased but defiantwere quite out of control. 
The Senior and junior classes whichin American colleges 
dictate in these affraysfound their dignity topplingand in 
consequence there was a sudden oncome of the entire force of 
upper classmen football players naturally in advance. All 
distinctions were dissolved at once in a general fracas. The stiff 
and still Gothic windows surveyed a scene of dire carnage. 
Suddenly a voice rang brazenly through the tumult. It was 
not loudbut it was different. " Gentlemen! Gentlemen!'" 
Instantly there was a remarkable number of haltingsabrupt 
replacementsquick changes. Prof. Wainwright stood at the 
door of his recitation roomlooking into the eyes of each 
member of the mob of three hundred. "Ssh! " said the mob. " 
Ssh! Quit! Stop! It's the Embassador! Stop!" He had once 
been minister to Austro-Hungaryand forever now to 
the students of the college his name was Embassador. He 
stepped into the corridorand they cleared for him a little 
respectful zone of floor. He looked about him coldly. " It seems 
quite a general dishevelment. The Sophomores display an 
energy in the halls which I do not detect in the class room." A 
feeble murmur of appreciation arose from the outskirts of the 
throng. While he had been speaking several remote groups of 
battling men had been violently signaled and suppressed by 
other students. The professor gazed into terraces of faces that 
were still inflamed. " I needn't say that I am surprised he 
remarked in the accepted rhetoric of his kind. He added 
musingly: There seems to be a great deal of torn linen. Who is 
the young gentleman with blood on his chin?" 
The throng moved restlessly. A manful silencesuch as
might be in the tombs of stern and honourable knightsfell
upon the shadowed corridor. The subdued rustling had fainted
to nothing. Then out of the crowd Cokepale and desperate
delivered himself.
 Oh, Mr. Coke,said the professorI would be glad if you
would tell the gentlemen they may retire to their dormitories.
He waited while the students passed out to the campus.
The professor returned to his room for some booksand
then began his own march across the snowy
campus. The wind twisted his coat-tails fantasticallyand he
was obliged to keep one hand firmly on the top of his hat.
When he arrived home he met his wife in the hall. " Look here
Mary he cried. She followed him into the library. Look here
he said. What is this all about? Marjory tells me she wants to
marry Rufus Coleman."
Mrs. Wainwright was a fat woman who was said to pride
herself upon being very wise and if necessarysly. In addition
she laughed continually in an inexplicably personal waywhich
apparently made everybody who heard her feel offended. Mrs.
Wainwright laughed.
Well,said the professorbristling what do you mean by
that ? 
Oh, Harris,she replied. " OhHarris."
The professor straightened in his chair. " I do not see any
illumination in those remarksMary. I understand from
Marjory's manner that she is bent upon marrying Rufus
Coleman. She said you knew of it."
 Why, of course I knew. It was as plain---
 Plain !scoffed the professor. " Plain !"
Whyof course she cried. I knew it all along."
There was nothing in her tone which proved that she
admired the event itself. She was evidently carried away by the
triumph of her penetration. " I knew it all along she added,
nodding.
The professor looked at her affectionately. You knew it all
alongthenMary? Why didn't you tell medear ? "
 Because you ought to have known it,she answered
blatantly.
The professor was glaring. Finally he spoke in tones of grim
reproach. "Marywhenever you happen to know anything
dearit seems only a matter of partial recompense that you
should tell me."
The wife had been taught in a terrible school that she should
never invent any inexpensive retorts concerning bookworms
and so she yawed at once. "ReallyHarris. ReallyI didn't
suppose the affair was serious. You could have knocked me
down with a feather. Of course he has been here very oftenbut
then Marjory gets a great deal of attention. A great deal of
attention." 
The professor had been thinking. " Rather than let my girl 
marry that scalawagI'll take you and her to Greece this winter 
with the class. Separation. It is a sure cure that has the 
sanction of antiquity." 
Well,said Mrs. Wainwrightyou know best, Harris. You 
know best.It was a common remark with herand it probably 
meant either approbation or disapprobation if it did not mean 
simple discretion. 
CHAPTER III. 
THERE had been a babe with no arms born in one of the 
western counties of Massachusetts. In place of upper limbs the 
child had growing from its chest a pair of fin-like handsmere 
bits of skin-covered bone. Furthermoreit had only one eye. 
This phenomenon lived four daysbut the news of the birth 
had travelled up this country road and through that village until 
it reached the ears of the editor of the Michaelstown Tribune. 
He was also a correspondent of the New York Eclipse. On the 
third day he appeared at the home of the parents accompanied 
by a photographer. While the latter arranged hisinstrument
the correspondent talked to the father and mothertwo 
coweyed and yellow-faced people who seemed to suffer a 
primitive fright of the strangers. Afterwards as the 
correspondent and the photographer were climbing into their 
buggythe mother crept furtively down to the gate and asked
in a foreigner's dialectif they would send her a copy of the 
photograph. The correspondent carelessly indulgentpromised 
it. As the buggy swung awaythe father came from behind an 
apple treeand the two semi-humans watched it with its burden 
of glorious strangers until it rumbled across 
the bridge and disappeared. The correspondent was elate; he 
told the photographer that the Eclipse would probably pay fifty 
dollars for the article and the photograph. 
The office of the New York Eclipse was at the top of the immense 
building on Broadway. It was a sheer mountain to the heights of 
which the interminable thunder of the streets arose faintly. The 
Hudson was a broad path of silver in the distance. Its edge was 
marked by the tracery of sailing ships' rigging and by the huge 
and many-coloured stacks of ocean liners. At the foot of the 
cliff lay City Hall Park. It seemed no larger than a quilt. The 
grey walks patterned the snow-covering into triangles and ovals 
and upon them many tiny people scurried here and therewithout 
soundlike a fish at the bottom of a pool. It was only the 
vehicles that sent highunmistakablethe deep bass of their 
movement. And yet after listening one seemed to hear a singular 
murmurous notea pulsationas if the crowd made noise by its 
mere livinga mellow hum of the eternal strife. Then suddenly 
out of the deeps might ring a human voicea newsboy shout 
perhapsthe cry of a faraway jackal at night. 
From the level of the ordinary roofscombined in many 
plateausdotted with short iron chimneys from which curled 
wisps of steamarose other mountains like the Eclipse 
Building. They were great peaksornateglittering with 
paint or polish. Northward they subsided to sun-crowned ranges. 
From some of the windows of the Eclipse office 
dropped the walls of a terrible chasm in the darkness of which 
could be seen vague struggling figures. Looking down into this 
appalling crevice one discovered only the tops of hats and 
knees which in spasmodic jerks seemed to touch the rims of the 
hats. The scene represented some weird fight or dance or 
carouse. It was not an exhibition of men hurrying along a 
narrow street. 
It was good to turn one's eyes from that place to the vista of 
the city's splendid reacheswith spire and spar shining in the 
clear atmosphere and the marvel of the Jersey shorepearlmisted 
or brilliant with detail. From this height the sweep of a 
snow-storm was defined and majestic. Even a slight summer 
showerwith swords of lurid yellow sunlight piercing its edges 
as if warriors were contesting every foot of its advancewas 
from the Eclipse office something so 
inspiring that the chance pilgrim felt a sense of exultation as if 
from this peak he was surveying the worldwide war of the 
elements and life. The staff of the Eclipse usually worked 
without coats and amid the smoke from pipes. 
To one of the editorial chambers came a photograph and an 
article from MichaelstownMassachusetts. A boy placed the 
packet and many others upon the desk of a young man who 
was standing before a window and 
thoughtfully drumming upon the pane. He turned at the 
thudding of the packets upon his desk. " Blast you he 
remarked amiably. OhI guess it won't hurt you to work 
answered the boy, grinning with a comrade's Insolence. Baker, 
an assistant editor for the Sunday paper, took scat at his desk 
and began the task of examining the packets. His face could not 
display any particular interest because he had been at the same 
work for nearly a fortnight. 
The first long envelope he opened was from a woman. 
There was a neat little manuscript accompanied by a letter 
which explained that the writer was a widow who was trying to 
make her living by her pen and who, further, hoped that the 
generosity of the editor of the Eclipse would lead him to give 
her article the opportunity which she was sure it deserved. She 
hoped that the editor would pay her as well as possible for it, as 
she needed the money greatly. She added that her brother was 
a reporter on the Little Rock Sentinel and he had declared that 
her literary style was excellent. 
Baker really did not read this note. His vast experience of a 
fortnight had enabled him to detect its kind in two glances. He 
unfolded the manuscript, looked at it woodenly and then tossed 
it with the letter to the top of his desk, where it lay with the 
other corpses. None could think of widows in Arkansas, 
ambitious from the praise of the reporter on the Little Rock Sentinel, 
waiting for a crown of literary glory and money. In the next 
envelope a man using the note-paper of a Boston journal 
begged to know if the accompanying article would be 
acceptable; if not it was to be kindly returned in the enclosed 
stamped envelope. It was a humourous essay on trolley cars. 
Adventuring through the odd scraps that were come to the 
great mill, Baker paused occasionally to relight his pipe. 
As he went through envelope after envelope, the desks 
about him gradually were occupied by young men who entered 
from the hall with their faces still red from the cold of the 
streets. For the most part they bore the unmistakable stamp of
the American college. They had that confident poise which is
easily brought from the athletic field. Moreover, their clothes
were quite in the way of being of the newest fashion. There was
an air of precision about their cravats and linen. But on the
other hand there might be with them some indifferent westerner
who was obliged to resort to irregular means and harangue
startled shop-keepers in order to provide himself with collars of
a strange kind. He was usually very quick and brave of eye and
noted for his inability to perceive a distinction between his own
habit and the habit of others, his western character preserving
itself inviolate amid a confusion of manners.
The men, coming one and one, or two and two, flung
badinage to all corners of the room. Afterward, as they wheeled
from time to time in their chairs, they bitterly insulted each other
with the utmost good-nature, taking unerring aim at faults and
riddling personalities with the quaint and cynical humour of a
newspaper office. Throughout this banter, it was strange to
note how infrequently the men smiled, particularly when
directly engaged in an encounter.
A wide door opened into another apartment where were
many little slanted tables, each under an electric globe with a
green shade. Here a curly-headed scoundrel with a corncob
pipe was hurling paper balls the size of apples at the head of an
industrious man who, under these difficulties, was trying to
draw a picture of an awful wreck with ghastly-faced sailors
frozen in the rigging. Near this pair a lady was challenging a
German artist who resembled Napoleon III. with having been
publicly drunk at a music hall on the previous night. Next to the
great gloomy corridor of this sixteenth floor was a little office
presided over by an austere boy, and here waited in enforced
patience a little dismal band of people who wanted to see the
Sunday editor.
Baker took a manuscript and after glancing about the room,
walked over to a man at another desk,
Here is something that. I think might do,he said.
The man at the desk read the first two pages. " But where is the
photogragh " " he asked then. "There should be a photograph
with this thing."
 Oh, I forgot,said Baker. He brought from his desk a
photograph of the babe that had been born lacking arms and
one eye. Baker's superior braced a knee against his desk and
settled back to a judicial attitude. He took the photograph and
looked at it impassively. " Yes he said, after a time, that's a
pretty good thing. You better show that to Coleman when he
comes in."
In the little office where the dismal band waitedthere had
been a sharp hopeful stir when Rufus Colemanthe Sunday
editorpassed rapidly from door to door and vanished within
the holy precincts. It had evidently been in the minds of some
to accost him thenbut his eyes did not turn once in their
direction. It was as if he had not seen them. Many experiences
had taught him that the proper manner of passing through this
office was at a blind gallop.
The dismal band turned then upon the austere office boy.
Some demanded with terrible dignity that he should take in
their cards at once. Others sought to ingratiate themselves by
smiles of tender friendliness. He for his part employed what we
would have called his knowledge of men and women upon the 
groupand in consequence blundered and bungled vividly
freezing with a glance an annoyed and importunate Arctic 
explorer who was come to talk of illustrations 
for an article that had been lavishly paid for in advance. The 
hero might have thought he was again in the northern seas. At 
the next moment the boy was treating almost courteously a 
German from the cast side who wanted the Eclipse to print a grand full 
page advertising description of his inventiona gun which was 
supposed to have a range of forty miles and to be able to 
penetrate anything with equanimity and joy. The gunas a 
matter of facthad once been induced to go off when it had 
hurled itself passionately upon its backincidentally breaking 
its inventor's leg. The projectile had wandered some four 
hundred yards seawardwhere it dug a hole in the water which 
was really a menace to navigation. Since then there had been 
nothing tangible save the inventorin splints and out of splints
as the fortunes of science decreed. In shortthis office boy 
mixed his business in the perfect manner of an underdone lad 
dealing with matters too large for himand throughout he 
displayed the pride and assurance of a god. 
As Coleman crossed the large office his face still wore the 
stern expression which he invariably used to carry him 
unmolested through the ranks of the dismal band. As he was 
removing his London overcoat he addressed the imperturbable 
back of one of his staffwho had a desk against the opposite 
wall. " Has Hasskins sent in that drawing of the mine accident 
yet? " The man did not lift his head from his work-but he 
answered at once: " No; not yet." Coleman was laying his hat 
on a chair. " Wellwhy hasn't he ? " he demanded. He glanced 
toward the door of the room in which the curly-headed 
scoundrel with the corncob pipe was still hurling paper balls at 
the man who was trying to invent the postures of dead 
mariners frozen in the rigging. The office boy came timidly from 
his post and informed Coleman of the waiting people. " All 
right said the editor. He dropped into his chair and began to 
finger his letters, which had been neatly opened and placed in a 
little stack by a boy. Baker came in with the photograph of the 
miserable babe. 
It was publicly believed that the Sunday staff of the Eclipse 
must have a kind of aesthetic delight in pictures of this kind, 
but Coleman's face betrayed no emotion as he looked at this 
specimen. He lit a fresh cigar, tilted his chair and surveyed it 
with a cold and stony stare. Yesthat's all right he said 
slowly. There seemed to be no affectionate relation between 
him and this picture. Evidently he was weighing its value as a 
morsel to be flung to a ravenous public, whose wolf-like 
appetite, could only satisfy itself upon mental entrails, 
abominations. As for himself, he seemed to be remote, exterior. 
It was a matter of the Eclipse business. 
Suddenly Coleman became executive. Better give 
it to Schooner and tell him to make a half-page---ornosend 
him in here and I'll tell him my idea. How's the article? Any 
good? Wellgive it to Smith to rewrite." 
An artist came from the other room and presented for 
inspection his drawing of the seamen dead in the rigging of the 
wrecka company of grizzly and horrible figuresbony-fingered
shrunken and with awful eyes. " Hum said Coleman, after a 
prolonged study, that's all right. That's goodJimmie. But 
you'd better work 'em up around the eyes a little more." The 
office boy was deploying in the distancewaiting for the 
correct moment to present some cards and names. 
The artist was cheerfully taking away his corpses when 
Coleman hailed him. " OhJimlet me see that thing againwill 
you? Nowhow about this spar? This don't look right to me." 
 It looks right to me,replied the artistsulkily. 
 But, see. It's going to take up half a page. Can't you 
change it somehow 
How am I going to change it?" said the otherglowering at 
Coleman. " That's the way it ought to be. How am I going to 
change it? That's the way it ought to be." 
 No, it isn't at all,said Coleman. "You've got a spar 
sticking out of the main body of the drawing in a way that will 
spoil the look of the whole page." 
The artist was a man of remarkable popular reputation and 
he was very stubborn and conceited of itconstantly making 
himself unbearable with covertthreats that if he was not 
delicately placated at all pointshe would freight his genius 
over to the office of the great opposition journal. 
 That's the way it ought to be,he repeatedin a tone at 
once sullen and superior. "The spar is all right. I can't rig spars 
on ships just to suit you." 
 And I can't give up the whole paper to your accursed spars, 
either,said Colemanwith animation. " Don't you see you use 
about a third of a page with this spar sticking off into space? 
Nowyou were always so cleverJimmiein adapting yourself to 
the page. Can't you shorten itor cut it offor something? Or
break it-that's the thing. Make it a broken spar dangling down. 
See? " 
 Yes, I s'pose I could do that,said the artistmollified by a 
thought of the ease with which he could make the changeand 
mollifiedtooby the brazen tribute to a part of his cleverness. 
 Well, do it, then,said the Sunday editorturning abruptly 
away. The artistwith head highwalked majestically back to 
the other room. Whereat the curly-headed one immediately 
resumed the rain of paper balls upon him. The office boy came 
timidly to Coleman and suggested the presence of the people 
in the outer office. " Let them wait until I read my 
mail said Coleman. He shuffled the pack of letters 
indifferently through his hands. Suddenly he came upon a little 
grey envelope. He opened it at once and scanned its contents 
with the speed of his craft. Afterward he laid it down before him 
on the desk and surveyed it with a cool and musing smile. 
So?" he remarked. " That's the caseis it?" 
He presently swung around in his chairand for a time held 
the entire attention of the men at the various desks. He outlined 
to them again their various parts in the composition of the next 
great Sunday edition. In a few brisk sentences he set a complex 
machine in proper motion. His men no longer thrilled with 
admiration at the precision with which he grasped each obligation 
of the campaign toward a successful edition. They had grown 
to accept it as they accepted his hat or his London clothes. At 
this time his face was lit with something of the self-contained 
enthusiasm of a general. Immediately afterward he arose and 
reached for his coat and hat. 
The office boycoming circuitously forwardpresented him 
with some cards and also with a scrap of paper upon which was 
scrawled a long and semicoherent word. " What are these ? " 
grumbled Coleman. 
They are waiting outside,answered the boywith 
trepidation. It was part of the law that the lion of the ante-room 
should cringe like a cold monkey
more or lessas soon as he was out of his private jungle. "Oh
Tallerman cried the Sunday editor, here's this Arctic man 
come to arrange about his illustration. I wish you'd go and talk 
it over with him." By chance he picked up the scrap of paper 
with its cryptic word. " Oh he said, scowling at the office boy. 
Pity you can't remember that fellow. If you can't remember 
faces any better than that you should be a detective. Get out 
now and tell him to go to the devil." The wilted slave turned at 
oncebut Coleman hailed him. " Hold on. Come to think of itI 
will see this idiot. Send him in he commanded, grimly. 
Coleman lapsed into a dream over the sheet of grey note 
paper. Presently, a middle-aged man, a palpable German, came 
hesitatingly into the room and bunted among the desks as 
unmanageably as a tempest-tossed scow. Finally he was 
impatiently towed in the right direction. He came and stood at 
Coleman's elbow and waited nervously for the engrossed man 
to raise his eyes. It was plain that this interview meant 
important things to him. Somehow on his commonplace 
countenance was to be found the expression of a dreamer, a 
fashioner of great and absurd projects, a fine, tender fool. He 
cast hopeful and reverent glances at the man who was deeply 
contemplative of the grey note. He evidently believed himself 
on the threshold of a triumph of some kind, and he awaited 
his fruition with a joy that was only made sharper by 
the usual human suspicion of coming events. 
Coleman glanced up at last and saw his visitor. 
Ohit's youis it ? " he remarked icilybending upon the 
German the stare of a tyrant. "So you've come againhave you? " 
He wheeled in his chair until he could fully display a 
contemptuousmerciless smile. "NowMr. 
What's-your-nameyou've called here to see me about twenty 
times already and at last I am going to say something definite 
about your invention." His listener's facewhich had worn for a 
moment a look of fright and bewildermentgladdened swiftly to 
a gratitude that seemed the edge of an outburst of tears. " Yes 
continued Coleman, I am going to say something definite. I am 
going to say that it is the most imbecile bit of nonsense that has 
come within the range of my large newspaper experience. It is 
simply the aberration of a rather remarkable lunatic. It is no good; 
it is not worth the price of a cheese sandwich. I understand 
that its one feat has been to break your leg; if it ever goes off 
againpersuade it to break your neck. And now I want you to 
take this nursery rhyme of yours and get out. And don't ever 
come here again. Do You understand ? You understanddo you ?" 
He arose and bowed in courteous dismissal. 
The German was regarding him with the surprise 
and horror of a youth shot mortally. He could not 
find his tongue for a moment. Ultimately he gasped : "But
Mister Editor "--Coleman interrupted him tigerishly. " You heard 
what I said? Get out." The man bowed his head and went 
slowly toward the door. 
Coleman placed the little grey note in his breast pocket. He 
took his hat and top coatand evading the dismal band by a 
shameless manoeuvrepassed through the halls to the entrance 
to the elevator shaft. He heard a movement behind him and saw 
that the German was also waiting for the elevator. 
Standing in the gloom of the corridorColeman felt the 
mournful owlish eyes of the German resting upon him. He took 
a case from his pocket and elaborately lit a cigarette. Suddenly 
there was a flash of light and a cage of bronzegilt and steel 
droppedmagically from above. Coleman yelled: " Down!" A 
door flew open. Colemanfollowed by the Germanstepped 
upon the elevator. " WellJohnnie he said cheerfully to the 
lad who operated this machine, is business good?" "Yessir
pretty good answered the boy, grinning. The little cage sank 
swiftly; floor after floor seemed to be rising with marvellous 
speed; the whole building was winging straight into the sky. 
There were soaring lights, figures and the opalescent glow of 
ground glass doors marked with black inscriptions. Other lifts 
were springing heavenward. All the lofty corridors rang with 
cries. Up! " Down! " " Down! " " Up! " The boy's hand 
grasped a lever and his machine obeyed his lightest movement 
with sometimes an unbalancing swiftness. 
Coleman discoursed briskly to the youthful attendant. Once 
he turned and regarded with a quick stare of insolent 
annoyance the despairing countenance of the German whose 
eyes had never left him. When the elevator arrived at the 
ground floorColeman departed with the outraged air of a man 
who for a time had been compelled to occupy a cell in company 
with a harmless spectre. 
He walked quickly away. Opposite a corner of the City Hall 
he was impelled to look behind him. Through the hordes of 
people with cable cars marching like panoplied elephantshe 
was able to distinguish the Germanmotionless and gazing after 
him. Coleman laughed. " That's a comic old boy he said, to 
himself. 
In the grill-room of a Broadway hotel he was obliged to wait 
some minutes for the fulfillment of his orders and he spent the 
time in reading and studying the little grey note. When his 
luncheon was served he ate with an expression of morose 
dignity. 
CHAPTER IV. 
MARJORY paused again at her father's door. After hesitating 
in the original way she entered the library. Her father almost 
represented an emblematic figure, seated upon a column of 
books. Well he cried. Then, seeing it was Marjory, he 
changed his tone. Ahunder the circumstancesmy dearI 
admit your privilege of interrupting me at any hour of the day. 
You have important business with me." His manner was 
satanically indulgent. 
The girl fingered a book. She turned the leaves in absolute 
semblance of a person reading. "Rufus Coleman called." 
Indeed,said the professor. 
And I've come to you, father, before seeing him.
The professor was silent for a time. " WellMarjory he said 
at last, what do you want me to say?" He spoke very 
deliberately. " I am sure this is a singular situation. Here appears 
the man I formally forbid you to marry. I am sure I do not know 
what I am to say." 
 I wish to see him,said the girl. 
You wish to see him?enquired the professor. "You wish 
to see him " MarjoryI may as well tell you now that with 
all the books and plays I've readI really 
don't know how the obdurate father should conduct himself. 
He is always pictured as an exceedingly dense gentleman with 
white whiskerswho does all the unintelligent things in the 
plot. You and I are going to play no dramaare weMarjory? I 
admit that I have white whiskersand I am an obdurate father. I 
amas you well may saya very obdurate father. You are not to 
marry Rufus Coleman. You understand the rest of the matter. 
He is here ; you want to see him. What will you say to him 
when you see him? " 
 I will say that you refuse to let me marry him, father and-
She hesitated a moment before she lifted her eyes fully and 
formidably to her father's face. " And that I shall marry him 
anyhow." 
The professor did not cavort when this statement came from 
his daughter. He nodded and then passed into a period of 
reflection. Finally he asked: "But when? That is the point. 
When?" 
The girl made a sad gesture. "I don't know. I don't know. 
Perhaps when you come to know Rufus better-" 
 Know him better. Know that rapscallion better? Why, I 
know him much better than he knows himself. I know him too 
well. Do you think I am talking offhand about this affair? Do 
you think I am talking without proper information?
Marjory made no reply. 
Well,said the professoryou may see Coleman on 
condition that you inform him at once that I forbid your 
marriage to him. I don't understand at all how to manage these 
situations. I don't know what to do. I suppose I should go 
myself and-No, you can't see him, Majory.
Still the girl made no reply. Her head sank forward and she 
breathed a trifle heavily. 
Marjory,cried the professorit is impossible that you 
should think so much of this man." He arose and went to his 
daughter. " Marjorymany wise children have been guided by 
foolish fathersbut we both suspect that no foolish child has 
ever been guided by a wise father. Let us change it. I present 
myself to you as a wise father. Follow my wishes in this affair 
and you will be at least happier than if you marry this wretched 
Coleman." 
She answered: " He is waiting for me." 
The professor turned abruptly from her and dropped into his 
chair at the table. He resumed a grip on his pen. " Go he said, 
wearily. Go. But if you have a remnant of senseremember 
what I have said to you. Go." He waved his hand in a dismissal 
that was slightly scornful. " I hoped you would have a minor 
conception of what you were doing. It seems a pity." Drooping 
in tearsthe girl slowly left the room. 
Coleman had an idea that he had occupied the chair for 
several months. He gazed about at the pictures and the odds 
and ends of a drawing-room in an attempt to take an interest in 
them. The great garlanded paper shade over the piano lamp 
consoled his impatience in a mild degree because he knew that 
Marjory had made it. He noted the clusters of cloth violets 
which she had pinned upon the yellow paper and he dreamed 
over the fact. He was able to endow this shade with certain 
qualities of sentiment that caused his stare to become almost a 
part of an intimacya communion. He looked as if he could 
have unburdened his soul to this shade over the piano lamp. 
Upon the appearance of Marjory he sprang up and came 
forward rapidly. " Dearest he murmured, stretching out both 
hands. She gave him one set of fingers with chilling 
convention. She said something which he understood to be 
Good-afternoon." He started as if the woman before him had 
suddenly drawn a knife. " Marjory he cried, what is the 
matter?." They walked together toward a window. The girl 
looked at him in polite enquiry. " Why? " she said. " Do I seem 
strange ? " There was a moment's silence while he gazed into 
her eyeseyes full of innocence and tranquillity. At last she 
tapped her foot upon the floor in expression of mild impatience. 
 People do not like to be asked what is the matter 
when there is nothing the matter. What do you mean ? 
Coleman's face had gradually hardened. " Wellwhat is 
wrong? " he demandedabruptly. "What has happened? What 
is itMarjory ? " 
She raised her glance in a perfect reality of wonder. "What is 
wrong? What has happened? How absurd! Why nothingof 
course." She gazed out of the window. " Look she added, 
brightly, the students are rolling somebody in a drift. Oh, 
the poor Man ! 
Colemannow wearing a bewildered airmade some pretense 
of being occupied with the scene. " Yes he said, ironically. 
Very interestingindeed." 
 Oh,said Marjorysuddenly I forgot to tell you. Father 
is going to take mother and me to Greece this winter with him 
and the class.
Coleman replied at once. " Ahindeed ? That will be jolly." 
Yes. Won't it be charming?
 I don't doubt it,he replied. His composure May have 
displeased herfor she glanced at him furtively and in a way 
that denoted surpriseperhaps. 
Oh, of course,she saidin a glad voice. " It will be more 
fun. We expect to nave a fine time. There is such a n ice lot of 
boys going Sometimes father 
chooses these dreadfully studious ones. But this time he 
acts as if he knew precisely how to make up a party." 
He reached for her hand and grasped it vise-like. "Marjory he
breathed, passionately, don't treat me so. Don't treat me-"
She wrenched her hand from him in regal indignation. " One
or two rings make it uncomfortable for the hand that is grasped
by an angry gentleman." She held her fingers and gazed as if
she expected to find them mere debris. " I am sorry that you are
not interested in the students rolling that man in the snow. It is
the greatest scene our quiet life can afford."
He was regarding her as a judge faces a lying culprit. " I
know he said, after a pause. Somebody has been telling you
some stories. You have been hearing something about me."
 Some stories ? she enquired. " Some stories about you?
What do you mean? Do you mean that I remember stories I may
happen to hear about people? "
There was another pause and then Coleman's face flared red.
He beat his hand violently upon a table. " Good GodMarjory!
Don't make a fool of me. Don't make this kind of a fool of meat
any rate. Tell me what you mean. Explain-"
She laughed at him. " Explain? Reallyyour vocabulary is
getting extensivebut it is dreadfully awkward to ask people to
explain when there is nothing to explain."
He glanced at her I know as well as you do that your
father is taking you to Greece in order to get rid of me.
 And do people have to go to Greece in order to get rid of
you? she askedcivilly. " I think you are getting excited."
 Marjory,he beganstormily.
She raised her hand. " Hush she said, there is somebody
coming." A bell had rung. A maid entered the room. " Mr.
Coke she said. Marjory nodded. In the interval of waiting,
Coleman gave the girl a glance that mingled despair with rage
and pride. Then Coke burst with half-tamed rapture into the
room. OhMiss Wainwright he almost shouted, I can't tell
you how glad I am. I just heard to-day you were going. Imagine
it. It will be more--ohhow are you Colemanhow are you " "
Marjory welcomed the new-comer with a cordiality that might
not have thrilled Coleman with pleasure. They took chairs that
formed a triangle and one side of it vibrated with talk. Coke and
Marjory engaged in a tumultuous conversation concerning the
prospective trip to Greece. The Sunday editoras remote as if
the apex of his angle was the top of a hillcould only study the
girl's clear profile. The youthful voices of the two others rang
like bells. He did not scowl at Coke; he merely looked at him as
if be gently disdained his mental calibre. In fact all the talk
seemed to tire him; it was childish; as for himhe apparently found
this babble almost insupportable.
 And, just think of the camel rides we'll have,cried Coke.
 Camel rides,repeated Colemandejectedly. " My dear
Coke."
Finally he arose like an old man climbing from a sick bed.
Well, I am afraid I must go, Miss Wainwright.Then he said
affectionately to Coke: " Good-byeold boy. I hope you will
have a good time."
Marjory walked with him to the door. He shook her hand in a
friendly fashion. " Good-byeMarjory' he said. " Perhaps it
may happen that I shan't see you again before you start for
Greece and so I had best bid you God-speed---or whatever the
term is now. You will have a charming time; Greece must be a
delightful place. ReallyI envy youMarjory. And now my dear
child "-his voice grew brotherlyfilled with the patronage of
generous fraternal love although I may never see you again
let me wish you fifty as happy years as this last one has been
for me.He smiled frankly into her eyes; then dropping her
handhe went away.
Coke renewed his tempest of talk as Marjory turned toward
him. But after a series of splendid eruptionswhose red fire
illumined all of ancient and modem Greecehe too went away.
The professor was in his. library apparently absorbed in a
book when a tottering pale-faced woman appeared to him and
in her course toward a couch in a corner of the roomdescribed
almost a semi-circle. She flung herself face downward. A thick
strand of hair swept over her shoulder. " Ohmy heart is
broken! My heart is broken! "
The professor arosegrizzled and thrice-old with pain. He
went to the couchbut he found himself a handlessfetless
man. " My poor child he said. My poor child." He remained
listening stupidly to her convulsive sobbing. A ghastly kind of
solemnity came upon the room.
Suddenly the girl lifted herself and swept the strand of hair
away from her face. She looked at the professor with the wide-
open dilated eyes of one who still sleeps. " Father she said in
a hollow voice, he don't love me. He don't love me. He don't
love me. at all. You were rightfather." She began to laugh.
Marjory,said the professortrembling. "Be quietchild. Be
quiet."
 But,she said I thought he loved me--I was sure of it. But
it don't-don't matter. I--I can't get over it. Women-women, the-
but it don't matter.
 Marjory,said the professor. " Marjorymy poor
daughter."
She did not heed his appealbut continued in a dull whisper.
 He was playing with me. He was--was-was flirting with me. 
He didn't care when I told him--I told him--
I was going-going away.She turned her face wildly to the
cushions again. Her young shoulders shook as if they might
break. " Wo-men-women-they always----"
CHAPTER V. 
By a strange mishap of management the train which bore 
Coleman back toward New York was fetched into an obscure 
side-track of some lonely region and there compelled to bide a
change of fate. The engine wheezed and sneezed like a paused
fat man. The lamps in the cars pervaded a stuffy odor of smoke
and oil. Coleman examined his case and found only one cigar.
Important brakemen proceeded rapidly along the aislesand
when they swung open the doorsa polar wind circled the legs
of the passengers. " Wellnowwhat is all this for? " demanded
Colemanfuriously. " I want to get back to New York."
The conductor replied with sarcasm Maybe you think I'm
stuck on it I ain't running the road. I'm running this trainand I
run it according to orders." Amid the dismal comforts of the
waiting carsColeman felt all the profound misery of the
rebuffed true lover. He had been sentencedhe thoughtto a
penal servitude of the heartas he watched the duskyvague
ribbons of smoke come from the lamps and felt to his knees the
cold winds from the brakemen's busy flights. When the train
started with a whistle and a jolthe was elate as if in his 
abjection his beloved's hand had reached to him from the clouds.
When he had arrived in New Yorka cab rattled him to an
uptown hotel with speed. In the restaurant he first ordered a
large bottle of champagne. The last of the wine he finished in
sombre mood like an unbroken and defiant man who chews the
straw that litters his prison house. During his dinner he was
continually sending out messenger boys. He was arranging a
poker party. Through a window he watched the beautiful
moving life of upper Broadway at nightwith its crowds and
clanging cable cars and its electric signsmammoth and
glitteringlike the jewels of a giantess.
Word was brought to him that the poker players were
arriving. He arose joyfullyleaving his cheese. In the broad hall
occupied mainly by miscellaneous people and actorsall deep
in leather chairshe found some of his friends waiting. They
trooped up stairs to Coleman's roomswhere as a preliminary
Coleman began to hurl books and papers from the table to the
floor. A boy came with drinks. Most of the menin order to
prepare for the gameremoved their coats and cuffs and drew
up the sleeves of their shirts. The electric globes shed a
blinding light upon the table. The sound of clinking chips
arose; the elected banker spun the cardscareless and
dexterous.
Laterduring a pause of dealingColeman said:
 Billie, what kind of a lad is that young Coke up at Washurst?
He addressed an old college friend.
 Oh, you mean the Sophomore Coke? asked the friend. 
 Seems a decent sort of a fellow. I don't know. Why? 
Well, who is he? Where does he come from? What do you
know about him? 
 He's one of those Ohio Cokes-regular thing-- father
millionaire-used to be a barber-good old boy -why? 
 Nothin',said Colemanlooking at his cards. " I know the
lad. I thought he was a good deal of an ass. I wondered who
his people were."
 Oh, his people are all right-in one way. Father owns rolling
mills. Do you raise it, Henry? Well, in order to make vice
abhorrent to the young, I'm obliged to raise back.
 I'll see it,observed Colemanslowly pushing forward two
blue chips. Afterward he reached behind him and took another
glass of wine.
To the others Coleman seemed to have something bitter
upon his mind. He played poker quietlysteadfastlyand
without change of eyefollowing the mathematical religion of
the game. Outside of the play he was savagealmost
insupportable.
 What's the matter with you, Rufus ? said his old college
friend. " Lost your job? Girl gone back on you? You're a 
hell of -a host. We don't get any. thing but insults and drinks."
Late at night Coleman began to lose steadily. In the
meantime he drank glass after glass of wine. Finally he made
reckless bets on a mediocre hand and an opponent followed
him thoughtfully bet by betundauntedcalmabsolutely
without emotion. Coleman lost; he hurled down his cards. "
Nobody but a damned fool would have seen that last raise on
anything less than a full hand."
 Steady. Come off. What's wrong with you, Rufus ? cried
his guests.
 You're not drunk, are you ? said his old college friend
puritanically.
 'Drunk' ?repeated Coleman.
 Oh, say,cried a man let's play cards. What's all this
gabbling ? 
It was when a greydirty light of dawn evaded the thick
curtains and fought on the floor with the feebled electric glow
that Colemanin the midst of playlurched his chest heavily
upon the table. Some chips rattled to the floor. " I'll call you
he murmured, sleepily.
Well replied a man, sternly, three kings."
The other players with difficulty extracted five cards from
beneath Coleman's pillowed head. " Not a pair! Comecome
this won't do. Ohlet's stop playing. This is the rottenest game I
ever sat in. Let's go home. Why don't you put him. to bedBillie?"
When Coleman awoke next morninghe looked back upon
the poker game as something that had transpired in previous
years. He dressed and went down to the grill-room. For his
breakfast he ordered some eggs on toast and a pint of
champagne. A privilege of liberty belonged to a certain Irish
waiterand this waiter looked at himgrinning. "Maybe you
had a pretty lively time last nightMr Coleman? "
 Yes, Pat,answered Coleman I did. It was all because of
an unrequited affection, Patrick.The man stood neara napkin
over his arm. Coleman went on impressively. " The ways of the
modern lover are strange. NowIPatrickam a modern lover
and whenyesterdaythe dagger of disappointment was driven
deep into my heartI immediately played poker as hard as I
could and incidentally got loaded. This is the modern point of
view. I understand on good authority that in old times lovers
used to. languish. That is probably a liebut at any rate we do
notin these timeslanguish to any great extent. We get drunk.
Do you understandPatrick? "
The waiter was used to a harangue at Coleman's breakfast
time. He placed his hand over his mouth and giggled. "Yessir."
 Of course,continued Colemanthoughtfully. " It might be
pointed out by uneducated persons that
it is difficult to maintain a high standard of drunkenness for the
adequate length of timebut in the series of experiments which
I am about to make I am sure I can easily prove them to be in
the wrong."
 I am sure, sir,said the waiter the young ladies would
not like to be hearing you talk this way.
 Yes; no doubt, no doubt. The young ladies have still quite
medieval ideas. They don't understand. They still prefer lovers
to languish.
 At any rate, sir, I don't see that your heart is sure
enough broken. You seem to take it very easy. 
 Broken! cried Coleman. " Easy? Manmy heart is in
fragments. Bring me another small bottle."
CHAPTER VI. 
Six weeks laterColeman went to the office of the proprietor 
of the Eclipse. Coleman was one of those 
smooth-shaven old-young men who wear upon some occasions 
a singular air of temperance and purity. At these timeshis 
features lost their quality of worldly shrewdness and endless 
suspicion and bloomed as the face of some innocent boy. It 
then would be hard to tell that he had ever encountered even 
such a crime as a lie or a cigarette. As he walked into the 
proprietor's office he was a perfect semblance of a fine
inexperienced youth. People usually concluded this change was 
due to a Turkish bath or some other expedient of recuperation
but it was due probably to the power of a physical 
characteristic. 
 Boss in ? said Coleman. 
 Yeh,said the secretaryjerking his thumb toward an inner 
door. In his private officeSturgeon sat on the edge of the table 
dangling one leg and dreamily surveying the wall. As Coleman 
entered he looked up quickly. "Rufus he cried, you're just 
the man I wanted to see. I've got a scheme. A great scheme." 
He slid from the table and began to pace briskly to 
and frohis hands deep in his trousers' pocketshis chin sunk 
in his collarhis light blue eyes afire with interest. " Now listen. 
This is immense. The Eclipse enlists a battalion of men to go to 
Cuba and fight the Spaniards under its own flag-the Eclipse flag. 
Collect trained officers from here and there-enlist every young 
devil we see-drill 'em--best rifles-loads of ammunitionprovisions-
staff of doctors and nurses -a couple of dynamite 
guns-everything complete best in the world. Nowisn't that 
great ? What's the matter with that now ? Eh? Eh? Isn't that 
great? It's greatisn't it? Eh? Whymy boywe'll free-" 
Coleman did not seem to ignite. " I have been arrested four 
or five times already on fool matters connected with the 
newspaper business he observed, gloomily, but I've never 
yet been hung. I think your scheme is a beauty." 
Sturgeon paused in astonishment. " Whywhat happens to 
be the matter with you ? What are you kicking about ? " 
Coleman made a slow gesture. " I'm tired he answered. I 
need a vacation." 
Vacation!cried Sturgeon. "Why don't you take one then ? " 
 That's what I've come to see you about. I've had a pretty 
heavy strain on me for three years now, and I want to get a 
little rest.
 Well, who in thunder has been keeping you from it? It 
hasn't been me.
 I know it hasn't been you, but, of course, I wanted the 
paper to go and I wanted to have my share in its success, but 
now that everything is all right I think I might go away for a 
time if you don't mind.
 Mind! exclaimed Sturgeon falling into his chair and 
reaching for his check book. "Where do you want to go? How 
long do you want to be gone? How much money do you want ?" 
 I don't want very much. And as for where I want to go, I 
thought I might like to go to Greece for a while.
Sturgeon had been writing a check. He poised his pen in the 
air and began to laugh. " That's a queer place to go for a rest. 
Whythe biggest war of modern times--a war that may involve 
all Europe-is likely to start there at any moment. You are not 
likely to get any rest in Greece." 
 I know that,answered Coleman. " I know there is likely to 
be a war there. But I think that is exactly what would rest me. I 
would like to report the war." 
You are a queer bird,answered Sturgeon deeply fascinated 
with this new idea. He had apparently forgotten his vision of a 
Cuban volunteer battalion. " War correspondence is about the 
most original medium for a rest I ever heard of." 
Oh, it may seem funny, but really, any change will be good 
for me now. I've been whacking at this old Sunday edition until 
I'm sick of it, and some,. times I wish the Eclipse was in hell.
That's all right laughed the proprietor of the 
Eclipse. But I still don't see how you 'are going to get any 
vacation out of a war that will upset the whole of Europe. But 
that's your affair. If you want to become the chief 
correspondent in the field in case of any such warwhyof 
courseI would be glad to have you. I couldn't get anybody 
better. But I don't see where your vacation comes in." 
 I'll take care of that,answered Coleman. " When I take a 
vacation I want to take it my own wayand I think this will be a 
vacation because it will be different -don't you see-different ? " 
 No, I don't see any sense in it, but if you think that is the
way that suits you, why, go ahead. How much money do you
want ? 
 I don't want much. just enough to see me through nicely.
Sturgeon scribbled on his check book and then ripped a
check from it. " Here's a thousand dollars. Will that do you to
start with? "
 That's plenty.
When do you want to start ? 
 To-morrow.
Oh,said Sturgeon. " You're in a hurry." This
impetuous manner of exit from business seemed to appeal to
him. " To-morrow he repeated smiling. In reality he was some
kind of a poet using his millions romantically, spending wildly
on a sentiment that might be with beauty or without beauty,
according to the momentary vacillation. The vaguely-defined
desperation in Coleman's last announcement appeared to
delight him. He grinned and placed the points of his fingers
together stretching out his legs in a careful attitude of
indifference which might even mean disapproval. To-morrow
he murmured teasingly.
By jiminy exclaimed Coleman, ignoring the other man's
mood, I'm sick of the whole business. I've got out a Sunday
paper once a week for three years and I feel absolutely
incapable of getting out another edition. It would be all right if
we were running on ordinary linesbut when each issue is more
or less of an attempt to beat the previous issueit becomes
rather wearingyou know. If I can't get a vacation now I take
one later in a lunatic asylum."
 Why, I'm not objecting to your having a vacation. I'm
simply marvelling at the kind of vacation you want to take. And
'to-morrow,' too, eh ? 
 Well, it suits me,muttered Colemansulkily.
 Well, if it suits you, that's enough. Here's your check. Clear
out now and don't let me see you again until you are
thoroughly rested, even if it takes a year.He arose and stood
smiling. He was mightily pleased with himself. He liked to 
perform in this way. He was almost seraphic as he thrust the 
check for a thousand dollars toward Coleman.
Then his manner changed abruptly. " Hold on a minute. I
must think a little about this thing if you are going to manage
the correspondence. Of course it will be a long and bloody
war."
You bet.
The big chance is that all Europe will be dragged into it. Of
course then you would have to come out of Greece and take up
abetter position-say Vienna.
No, I wouldn't care to do that,said Coleman positively. "I
just want to take care of the Greek end of it."
 It will be an idiotic way to take a vacation,observed
Sturgeon. 
 Well, it suits me,muttered Coleman again. " I tell you 
what it is-" he added suddenly. "I've got some private reasonssee 
? " 
Sturgeon was radiant with joy. " Private reasons." He was 
charmed by the sombre pain in Coleman's eyes and his own 
ability to eject it. "Good. Go now and be blowed. I will cable 
final instruction to meet you in London. As soon as you get to 
Greececable me an account of the situation there and we will 
arrange our plans." He began to laugh. " Private reasons. Come 
out to dinner with me." 
 I can't very well,said Coleman. " If I go tomorrowI've 
got to pack-" 
But here the real tyrant appearedemerging suddenly from 
behind the curtain of sentimentappearing like a red devil in a 
pantomine. " You can't ? " snapped Sturgeon. " Nonsense----" 
CHAPTER VII. 
SWEEPING out from between two remotehalf-submerged 
dunes on which stood slender sentry light. housesthe steamer 
began to roll with a gentle insinuating motion. Passengers in 
their staterooms saw at rhythmical intervals the spray racing 
fleetly past the portholes. The waves grappled hurriedly at the 
sides of the great flying steamer and boiled discomfited astern 
in a turmoil of green and white. From the tops of the enormous 
funnels streamed level masses of smoke which were 
immediately torn to nothing by the headlong wind. Meanwhile 
as the steamer rushed into the northeastmen in caps and 
ulsters comfortably paraded the decks and stewards arranged 
deck chairs for the reception of various women who were 
coming from their cabins with rugs. 
In the smoking roomold voyagers were settling down 
comfortably while new voyagers were regarding them with a 
diffident respect. Among the passengers Coleman found a 
number of people whom he knewincluding a wholesale wine 
merchanta Chicago railway magnate and a New York 
millionaire. They lived practically in the smoking room. 
Necessity drove them from time to time to the salonor to their 
berths. Once indeed the millionaire was absentfrom the group 
while penning a short note to his wife. 
When the Irish coast was sighted Coleman came on deck to 
look at it. A tall young woman immediately halted in her walk 
until he had stepped up to her. " Wellof all ungallant men
Rufus Colemanyou are the star she cried laughing and held 
out her hand. 
Awfully sorryI'm sure he murmured. Been playing poker 
in the smoking room all voyage. Didn't have a look at the 
passenger list until just now. Why didn't you send me word?" 
These lies were told so modestly and sincerely that when the 
girl flashed herbrilliant eyes full upon their author there was a 
mixt of admiration in the indignation. 
 Send you a card I don't believe you can readelse you 
would have known I was to sail on this steamer. If I hadn't been 
ill until to-day you would have seen me in the salon. I open at 
the Folly Theatre next week. Dear ol' Lunnony' know." 
 Of course, I knew you were going,said Coleman.
But I thought you were to go later. What do you open in? 
 Fly by Night. Come walk along with me. See those two old
ladies They've been watching for me like hawks ever since we
left New York. They expected me to flirt with every man on
board. But I've fooled them. I've been just as g-o-o-d. I had to
be."
As the pair moved toward the sternenormous and
radiant green waves were crashing futilely after the steamer.
Ireland showed a dreary coast line to the north. A wretched
man who had crossed the Atlantic eighty-four times was
declaiming to a group of novices. A venerable bankerbundled
in rugswas asleep in his deck chair.
 Well, Nora,said Coleman I hope you make a hit in
London. You deserve it if anybody does. You've worked hard.
Worked hard,cried the girl. "I should think so. Eight years
ago I was in the rear row. Now I have the centre of the stage
whenever I want it. I made Chalmers cut out that great scene in
the second act between the queen and Rodolfo. The idea! Did
he think I would stand that ? And just because he was in love
with Clara Trotwoodtoo."
Coleman was dreamy. " Remember when I was dramatic man
for the Gazette and wrote the first notice ? "
 Indeed, I do,answered the girl affectionately.
 Indeed, I do, Rufus. Ah, that was a great lift. I believe that
was the first thing that had an effect on old Oliver. Before that,
he never would believe that I was any good. Give me your arm,
Rufus. Let's parade before the two old women.Coleman
glanced at her keenly. Her voice had trembled slightly. Her eyes
were lustrous as if she were about to weep.
 Good heavens,he said. " You are the same old
Nora Black. I thought you would be proud and 'aughty by this
time."
 Not to my friends,she murmured. Not to my friends. I'm
always the same and I never forget. Rufus.
 Never forget what? asked Coleman.
 If anybody does me a favour I never forget it as long as I
live,she answered fervently.
 Oh, you mustn't be so sentimental, Nora. You remember
that play you bought from little Ben Whipple, just because he
had once sent you some flowers in the old days when you were
poor and happened to bed sick. A sense of gratitude cost you
over eight thousand dollars that time, didn't it? Coleman
laughed heartily.
 Oh, it wasn't the flowers at all,she interrupted seriously. "
Of course Ben was always a nice boybut then his play was
worth a thousand dollars. That's all I gave him. I lost some more
in trying to make it go. But it was too good. That was what was
the matter. It was altogether too good for the public. I felt
awfully sorry for poor little Ben."
Too good?sneered Coleman. "Too good? Too 
indifferently badyou mean. My dear girlyou mustn't imagine 
that you know a good play. You don'tat all." 
She paused abruptly and faced him. This regalcreature 
was looking at him so sternly that Coleman 
felt awed for a moment as if hewere in the presence of a great 
mind. " Do you mean to say that I'm not an artist ? " she asked. 
Coleman remained cool. " I've never been decorated for 
informing people of their own affairs he observed, but I 
should say that you were about as much of an artist as I am." 
Frowning slightlyshe reflected upon this reply. Thenof a 
suddenshe laughed. " There is no use in being angry with 
youRufus. You always were a hopeless scamp. But she 
added, childishly wistful, have you ever seen Fly by Night? 
Don't you think my dance in the second act is artistic? " 
 No,said Coleman I haven't seen Fly by Night yet, but 
of course I know that you are the most beautiful dancer on the 
stage. Everybody knows that.
It seemed that her hand tightened on his arm. Her 
face was radiant. " There she exclaimed. Now 
you are forgiven. You are a nice boyRufus-sometimes." 
When Miss Black went to her cabinColeman strolled into 
the smoking room. Every man there covertly or openly 
surveyed him. He dropped lazily into a chair at a table where 
the wine merchantthe Chicago railway king and the New York 
millionaire were playing cards. They made a noble pretense of 
not being aware of him. On the oil cloth top of the table the 
cards were snapped downturn by turn. 
Finally the wine merchantwithout lifting his head toaddress 
a particular personsaid: " New conquest." 
Hailing a steward Coleman asked for a brandy and soda. 
The millionaire said: " He's a sly cussanyhow." The railway 
man grinned. After an elaborate silence the wine merchant 
asked: " Know Miss Black longRufus?" Coleman looked 
scornfully at his friends. " What's wrong with you there
fellowsanyhow?" The Chicago man answered airily. " Oh
nothin'. Nothin'whatever." 
At dinner in the crowded salonColeman was aware that 
more than one passenger glanced first at Nora Black and then 
at himas if connecting them in some train of thoughtmoved to 
it by the narrow horizon of shipboard and by a sense of the 
mystery that surrounds the lives of the beauties of the stage. 
Near the captain's right hand sat the glowing and splendid 
Noraexhibiting under the gaze of the persistent eyes of many 
meaningsa practiced and profound composure that to the 
populace was terrfying dignity. 
Strolling toward the smoking room after dinnerColeman met 
the New York millionairewho seemed agitated. He took 
Coleman fraternally by the arm. " Sayold manintroduce me
won't you ? I'm crazy to know her." 
Do you mean Miss Black?asked Coleman. 
 Why, I don't know that I have a right. Of course, you know,
she hasn't been meeting anybody aboard. I'll ask her, though-
certainly.
 Thanks, old man, thanks. I'd be tickled to death. Come
along and have a drink. When will you ask her? 
 Why, I don't know when I'll see her. To-morrow, I suppose-
They had not been long in the smoking roomhowever
when the deck steward came with a card to Coleman. Upon it
was written: "Come for' a stroll?" Everybodysaw Coleman read
this card and then look up and whisper to the deck steward.
The deck steward bent his head and whispered discreetly in
reply. There was an abrupt pause in the hum of conversation.
The interest was acute.
Coleman leaned carelessly back in his chairpuffing at his
cigar. He mingled calmly in a discussion of the comparative
merits of certain trans-Atlantic lines. After a time he threw away
his cigar and arose. Men nodded. "Didn't I tell you?" His
studiously languid exit was made dramatic by the eagle-eyed
attention of the smoking room. 
On deck he found Nora pacing to and fro. "You didn't hurry
yourself she said, as he joined her. The lights of Queenstown
were twinkling. A warm wind, wet with the moisture of rain-
stricken sod, was coming from the land.
Why said Coleman, we've got all these duffers very much excited."
Well what do you care? asked hte girl. "You don'tcare do you?"
No, I don't care. Only it's rather absurd to be
watched all the time.He said this precisely as
if he abhorred being watched in this case. 
Oh by the way,he added. Then he paused for a 
moment. "Aw--a friend of mine--not a bad fellow--
he asked me for an introduction. Of courseI
told him I'd ask you."
She made a contemptuous gesture. "Ohanother Willie. 
Tell him no. Tell him to go home to his family. Tell
him to run away."
He isn't a bad fellow. He--said Coleman diffidently
he would probably be at the theatre every night in a box.
yes, and get drunk and throw a wine bottle on the 
stage instead of a bouquet. No,she declared positively
I won't see him.
Coleman did not seem to be oppressed by this ultimatum.
Oh, all right. I promised him--that was all.
Besides, are you in a great hurry to get rid of me?
Rid of you? Nonsense.
They walked in the shadow. "How long are you going to be
in LondonRufus?" asked Nora softly.
Who? I? Oh, I'm going right off to Greece. First
train. There's going to be a war, you know.
A war? Why, who is going to fight? The Greeks 
and the--the--the what?
The Turks. I'm going right over there.
Why, that's dreadful, Rufus,said the girlmournfull
and shocked. "You might get hurt or something." 
Presently she asked: "And aren't you going to be in 
London any time at all?"
Oh,he answeredpuffing out his lipsI may stop
in Londom for three or four days on my way home. I'm 
not sure of it.
And when will that be?
Oh, I can't tell. It may be in three or four months, 
or it may be a year from now. When the war stops.
There was a long silence as the walked up and down 
the swaying deck.
Do you know,said Nora at lastI like you, Rufus Coleman. 
I don't know any good reason for it either, unless it is because
you are such a brute. Now, when I was asking you if you were 
to be in London you were perfectly detestable. You know I was 
anxious.
I--detestable?cried Colemanfeigning amazement. 
Why, what did I say?
It isn't so much what you said--began Nora slowlly. 
Then she suddenly changed her manner.
Oh, well, don't let's talk about it any more. It's
too foolish. Only-you are a disagreeable person sometimes.
In the morningas the vessel steamed up the Irish channel
Coleman was on deckkeeping furtive watch on the cabin
stairs. After two hours of waitinghe scribbled a message on a
card and sent it below. He received an answer that Miss Black
had a headacheand felt too ill to come on deck. He went to the
smoking room. The three card-players glanced upgrinning.
What's the matter?asked the wine merchant. "You look
angry." As a matter of factColeman had purposely wreathed
his features in a pleasant and satisfied expressionso he was
for a moment furious at the wine merchant.
Confound the girl,he thought to himself. "She has
succeeded in making all these beggars laugh at me." He mused
that if he had another chance he would show her how
disagreeable or detestable or scampish he was under some
circumstances. He reflected ruefully that the complacence with
which he had accepted the comradeship of the belle of the 
voyage might have been somewhat overdone. Perhaps he had got a
little out of proportion. He was annoyed at the stares of the
other men in the smoking roomwho seemed now to be reading
his discomfiture. As for Nora Black he thought of her wistfully
and angrily as a superb woman whose company was honour
and joya payment for any sacrifices.
 What's the matter? persisted the wine merchant. " You
look grumpy."
Coleman laughed. " Do I?"
At Liverpoolas the steamer was being slowly warped to the
landing stage by some tugsthe passengers crowded the deck
with their hand-bags. Adieus were falling as dead leaves fall
from a great tree. The stewards were handling small hills of
luggage marked with flaming red labels. The ship was firmly
against the dock before Miss Black came from her cabin.
Coleman was at the time gazing shorewardbut his three
particular friends instantly nudged him. "What?" "There she
is?" "OhMiss Black?" He composedly walked toward her. It
was impossible to tell whether she saw him coming or whether it
was accidentbut at any rate she suddenly turned and moved
toward the stern of the ship. Ten watchful gossips had noted
Coleman's travel in her direction and more than half the
passengers noted his defeat. He wheeled casually and returned
to his three friends. They were colic-stricken with a coarse and
yet silent merriment. Coleman was glad that the voyage was
over.
After the polite business of an English custom housethe
travellers passed out to the waiting train. A nimble little
theatrical agent of some kindsent from Londondashed
forward to receive Miss Black. He had a first-class compartment
engaged for her and he bundled her and her maid into it in an 
exuberance of enthusiasm and admiration.. Coleman passing moodily 
along the line of coaches heard Nora's voice hailing him.
 Rufus.There she wasframed in a carriage window
beautiful and smiling brightly. Every near. by person turned to
contemplate this vision. 
 Oh,said Coleman advancing I thought I was not going
to get a chance to say good-bye to you.He held out his hand.
 Good-bye.
She pouted. " Whythere's plenty of room in this
compartment." Seeing that some forty people were transfixed in
observation of hershe moved a short way back. " Come on in
this compartmentRufus she said.
Thanks. I prefer to smoke said Coleman. He went off
abruptly.
On the way to London, he brooded in his corner on the two
divergent emotions he had experienced when refusing her
invitation. At Euston Station in London, he was directing a
porter, who had his luggage, when he heard Nora speak at his
shoulder. WellRufusyou sulky boy she said, I shall be at
the Cecil. If you have timecome and see me."
 Thanks, I'm sure, my dear Nora,answered Coleman
effusively. "But honestlyI'm off for Greece."
A brougham was drawn up near them and the nimble
little agent was waiting. The maid was directing the
establishment of a mass of luggage on and in a four-wheeler
cab. " Wellput me into my carriageanyhow said Nora. You
will have time for that."
Afterward she addressed him from the dark interior.
NowRufusyou must come to see me the minute you strike
London again- of She hesitated a moment and then smiling
gorgeously upon himshe said: " Brute! "
CHAPTER VIII. 
As soon as Coleman had planted his belongings in a hotel he 
was bowled in a hansom briskly along the smoky Strand
through a dark city whose walls dripped like the walls of a cave 
and whose passages were only illuminated by flaring yellow 
and red signs. 
Walkley the London correspondent of the Eclipsewhirled 
from his chair with a shout of joy and relief -at sight of Coleman. 
 Cables,he cried. "Nothin' but cables! All the people in New 
York are writing cables to you. The wires groan with them. And 
we groan with them too. They come in here in bales. However
there is no reason why you should read them all. Many are 
similar in words and many more are similar in spirit. The sense 
of the whole thing is that you get to Greece quicklytaking with 
you immense sums of money and enormous powers over 
nations." 
 Well, when does the row begin? 
 The most astute journalists in Europe have been predicting 
a general European smash-up every year since 1878,said 
Walkley and the prophets weep. The English are the only 
people who can pull off wars on schedule time, and they have 
to do it in odd corners of the globe. I fear the war business is 
getting tuckered. There is sorrow in the lodges of the lone wolves, 
the war correspondents. However, my boy, don't bury your face in 
your blanket. This Greek business looks very promising, very 
promising.He then began to proclaim trains and connections. 
 Dover, Calais, Paris, Brindisi, Corfu, Patras, Athens. That is 
your game. You are supposed to sky-rocket yourself over that 
route in the shortest possible time, but you would gain no time 
by starting before to-morrow, so you can cool your heels here 
in London until then. I wish I was going along.
Coleman returned to his hotela knight impatient and savage 
at being kept for a time out of the saddle. He went for a late 
supper to the grill room and as he was seated there alonea 
party of four or five people came to occupy the table directly 
behind him. They talked a great deal even before they arrayed 
them. selves at the tableand he at once recognised the voice 
of Nora Black. She was queening itapparentlyover a little 
band of awed masculine worshippers. 
Either by accident or for some curious reasonshe took a 
chair back to back with Coleman's chair. Her sleeve of fragrant 
stuff almost touched his shoulder and he felt appealing to him 
seductively a perfume of orris root and violet. He was drinking 
bottled stout with his chop; be sat with a face of wood. 
 Oh, the little lord ? Nora was crying to some slave. 
Now, do you know, he won't do at all. He is too awfully 
charming. He sits and ruminates for fifteen minutes and then he 
pays me a lovely compliment. Then he ruminates for another 
fifteen minutes and cooks up another fine thing. It is too 
tiresome. Do you know what kind of man. I like? she asked 
softly and confidentially. And here she sank back in her chair 
until. Coleman knew from the tingle that her head was but a few 
inches from his head. Hersleeve touched him. He turned more 
wooden under the spell of the orris root and violet. Her 
courtiers thought it all a graceful posebut Coleman believed 
otherwise. Her voice sank to the liquidsiren note of a 
succubus. " Do you know what kind of a man I like? Really 
like? I like a man that a woman can't bend in a thousand 
different ways in five minutes. He must have some steel in him. 
He obliges me to admire him the most when he remains stolid; 
stolid to me lures. Ahthat is the only kind of a man who cap 
ever break a heart among us women of the world. His stolidity 
is not real; no; it is mere artbut it is a highly finished art and 
often enough we can't cut through it. Really we can't. Andthen 
we may actually come to--er--care for the man. Really we may. 
Isn't it funny?" 
Alt the end Coleman arose and strolled out of the. room
smoking a cigarette. He did not betraya sign. Before. the door 
clashed softly behind himNora laughed a little defiantlyperhaps 
a little loudly. It made every man in the grill-room perk up his ears. 
As for her courtiersthey were entranced. In her description of the 
conquering manshe had easily contrived that each one of 
them wondered if she might not mean him. Each man was 
perfectly sure that he had plenty of steel in his composition 
and that seemed to be a main point. 
Coleman delayed for a time in the smoking room and then went 
to his own quarters. In reality he was Somewhat puzzled in his 
mind by a projection of the beauties of Nora Black upon his 
desire for Greece and MarjoryHis thoughts formed a duality. 
Once he was on the point of sending his card to Nora Black's 
parlourinasmuch as Greece was very distant and he could not 
start until the morrow. But he suspected that he was holding 
the interest of the actress because of his recent appearance of 
impregnable serenity in the presence of her fascinations. If he 
now sent his cardit was a form of surrender and he knew her 
to be one to take a merciless advantage. He would not make 
this tactical mistake. On the contrary he would go to bed and 
think of war
In reality he found it easy to fasten his mind upon the 
prospective war. He regarded himself cynically in most 
affairsbut he could not be cynical of warbecause had he seen 
none of it. His rejuvenated imagination began to thrill to 
the roll of battle
through his thought passing all the lightning in the pictures of 
Detaillede Neuville and Morot; lashed battery horse roaring 
over bridges; grand cuirassiers dashing headlong against stolid 
invincible red-faced lines of German infantry; furious and 
bloody grapplings in the streets of little villages of 
northeastern France. There was one thing at least of which he 
could still feel the spirit of a debutante. In this matter of war he 
was nottoounlike a young girl embarking upon her first 
season of opera. Walkelythe next morningsaw this mood 
sitting quaintly upon Coleman and cackled with astonishment 
and glee. Coleman's usual manner did not return until he 
detected Walkely's appreciation of his state and then he 
snubbed him according to the ritual of the Sunday editor of the 
New York Eclipse. Parentheticallyit 
might be said that if Coleman now recalled Nora Black to his 
mind at allit was only to think of her for a moment with ironical 
complacence. He had beaten her. 
When the train drew out of the stationColeman felt himself 
thrill. Was ever fate less perverse ? War and love-war and 
Marjory-were in conjunction both in Greece-and he could tilt 
with one lance at both gods. It was a great fine game to play 
and no man was ever so blessed in vacations. He was smiling 
continually to himself and sometimes actually on the point of 
talking aloud. This was despite the 
presence in the compartment of two fellow passengers who 
preserved in their uncomfortably rigidicy and uncompromising 
manners many of the more or less ridiculous traditions of the 
English first class carriage. Coleman's fine humour betrayed him 
once into addressing one of these passengers and the man 
responded simply with a wide look of incredulityas if he 
discovered that he was travelling in the same compartment with 
a zebu. It turned Coleman suddenly to evil temper and he 
wanted to ask the man questions concerning his education and 
his present mental condition: and so until the train arrived at 
Doverhis ballooning soul was in danger of collapsing. On the 
packet crossing the channeltoohe almost returned to the 
usual Rufus Coleman since all the world was seasick and he 
could not get a cabin in which to hide himself from it. However 
he reaped much consolation by ordering a bottle of 
champagne and drinking it in sight of the peoplewhich made 
them still more seasick. From Calais to Brindisi really nothing 
met his disapproval save the speed of the trainthe conduct of 
some of the passengersthe quality of the food servedthe 
manners of the guardsthe temperature of the carriagesthe 
prices charged and the length of the journey. 
In time he passed as in a vision from wretched Brindisi to 
charming Corfufrom Corfu to the little 
war-bitten city of Patras and from Patras by rail at the speed of 
an ox-cart to Athens. 
With a smile of grim content and surrounded in his carriage 
with all his beautiful brown luggagehe swept through the 
dusty streets of the Greek capital. Even as the vehicle arrived in 
a great terraced square in front of the yellow palaceGreek 
recruits in garments representing many trades and many 
characters were marching up cheering for Greece and the king. 
Officers stood upon the little iron chairs in front of the cafes; all 
the urchins came running and shouting; ladies waved their 
handkerchiefs from the balconies; the whole city was vivified 
with a leaping and joyous enthusiasm. The Athenians--as 
dragomen or otherwise-had preserved an ardor for their 
glorious traditionsand it was as if that in the white dust which 
lifted from the plaza and floated across the old-ivory face of the 
palacethere were the souls of the capable soldiers of the past. 
Coleman was almost intoxicated with it. It seemed to celebrate 
his own reasonshis reasons of love and ambition to conquer 
in love. 
When the carriage arrived in front of the Hotel D'Angleterre
Coleman found the servants of the place with more than one 
eye upon the scene in the plazabut they soon paid heed to the 
arrival of a gentleman with such an amount of beautiful leather 
luggageall marked boldly with the initials "R. C." Coleman let 
them lead him and follow him and conduct him and 
use bad English upon him without noting either 
their wordstheir salaams or their work. His mind had quickly 
fixed upon the fact that here was the probable headquarters of 
the Wainwright party andwith the rush of his western race 
fleeting through his veinshe felt that he would choke and die 
if he did not learn of the Wainwrights in the first two minutes. It 
was a tragic venture to attempt to make the Levantine mind 
understand something off the coursethat the new arrival's first 
thought was to establish a knowlege of the whereabouts of 
some of his friends rather than to swarm helter-skelter into that 
part of the hotel for which he was willing to pay rent. In fact he 
failed to thus impress them; failed in dark wrathbut
neverthelessfailed. At last he was simply forced to concede 
the travel of files of men up the broadredcarpeted stair-case
each man being loaded with Coleman's luggage. The men in the 
hotel-bureau were then able to comprehend that the foreign 
gentleman might have something else on his mind. They raised 
their eye-brows languidly when he spoke of the Wainwright 
party in gentle surprise that he had not yet learned that they 
were gone some time. They were departed on some excursion. 
Where? Ohreally-it was almost laughableindeed-they didn't 
know. Were they sure? Whyyes-it was almost laughable
indeed -they were quite sure. Where could the gentleman find 
out about them ? Wellthey-as they had explained-did 
not knowbut-it was possible-the American 
minister might know. Where was he to be found? Ohthat was 
very simple. It was well known that the American minister had 
apartments in the hotel. Was he in? Ahthat they could not 
say. 
So Colemanrejoicing at his final emancipation and with the 
grime of travel still upon himburst in somewhat violently upon 
the secretary of the Hon. Thomas M. Gordner of Nebraskathe 
United States minister to Greece. From his desk the secretary 
arose from behind an accidental bulwark of books and 
govermental pamphets. " Yescertainly. Mr. Gordner is in. If 
you would give me your card-" 
Directly. Coleman was introduced into another room where a 
quiet man who was rolling a cigarette looked him frankly but 
carefully in the eye. "The Wainwrights " said the minister 
immediately after the question. "WhyI myself am immensely 
concerned about them at present. I'm afraid they've gotten 
themselves into trouble.' 
 Really? said Coleman. 
 Yes. That little professor is ratherer--stubborn; Isn't he ? 
He wanted to make an expedition to Nikopolis and I explained 
to him all the possibilities of war and begged him to at least not 
take his wife and daughter with him.
 Daughter,murmured Colemanas if in his sleep. 
But that little old man had a head like a stone 
and only laughed at me. Of course those villainous young 
students were only too delighted at a prospect of war, but it 
was a stupid and absurd. thing for the man to take his wife and 
daughter there. They are up there now. I can't get a word from 
them or get a word to them.
Coleman had been choking. "Where is Nikopolis? " he asked. 
The minister gazed suddenly in comprehension of the man 
before him. " Nikopolis is in Turkey he answered gently. 
Turkey at that time was believed to be a country of delay, 
corruption, turbulence and massacre. It meant everything. More 
than a half of the Christians of the world shuddered at the name 
of Turkey. Coleman's lips tightened and perhaps blanched, and 
his chin moved out strangely, once, twice, thrice. How can I 
get to Nikopolis? " he said. 
The minister smiled. " It would take you the better part of 
four days if you could get therebut as a matter of fact you 
can't get there at the present time. A Greek army and a Turkish 
army are looking at each other from the sides of the river at 
Arta-the river is there the frontier-and Nikopolis happens to be 
on the wrong side. You can't reach them. The forces at Arta will 
fight within three days. I know it. Of course I've notified our 
legation at Constantinoplebutwith Turkish methods of 
communicationNikopolis is about as far from 
Constantinople as New York is from Pekin." 
Coleman arose. "They've run themselves into a nice mess 
he said crossly. WellI'm a thousand times obliged to youI'm 
sure." 
The minister opened his eyes a trifle. You are not going to 
try to reach themare you ? " 
 Yes,answered Colemanabstractedly. " I'm going to have a 
try at it. Friends of mineyou know-" 
At the bureau of the hotelthe correspondent found several 
cables awaiting him from the alert office of the New York Eclipse. 
One of them read: "State Department gives out bad plight of 
Wainwright party lost somewhere; find them. Eclipse." When 
Coleman perused the message he began to smile with seraphic 
bliss. Could fate have ever been less perverse. 
Whereupon he whirled himself in Athens. And it was to the 
considerable astonishment of some Athenians. He discovered 
and instantly subsidised a young Englishman whoduring his 
absence at the frontwould act as correspondent for the 
Eclipse at the capital. He took unto himself a dragoman and 
then bought three horses and hired a groom at a speed that 
caused a little crowd at the horse dealer's place to come out 
upon the pavement and watch this surprising young man ride 
back toward his hotel. He had already driven his dragoman into 
a curious state of Oriental bewilderment and panic in which he 
could only lumber hastily and helplessly here and therewith 
his face in the meantime marked with agony. Coleman's own field 
equipment had been ordered by cable from New York to Londonbut 
it was necessary to buy much tinned meatschocolatecoffee
candlespatent foodbrandytobaccosmedicine and other 
things. 
He went to bed that night feeling more placid. The train back 
to Patras was to start in the early morningand he felt the 
satisfaction of a man who is at last about to start on his own 
great quest. Before he dropped off to slumberhe heard crowds 
cheering exultantly in the streetsand the cheering moved him 
as it had done in the morning. He felt that the celebration of the 
people was really an accompaniment to his primal reasona 
reason of love and ambition to conquer in love-even as in the 
theatrethe music accompanies the heroin his progress. He 
arose once during the night to study a map of the Balkan 
peninsula and get nailed into his mind the exact position of 
Nikopolis. It was important. 
CHAPTER IX. 
COLEMAN'S dragoman aroused him in the blue before dawn. 
The correspondent arrayed himself in one of his new khaki suitsriding 
breeches and a tunic well marked with buttoned pocketsand 
accompanied by some of his beautiful brown luggagethey 
departed for the station. 
The ride to Patras is a terror under ordinary circumstances. It 
begins in the early morning and ends in the twilight. To 
Colemanhaving just come from Patras to Athensthis journey 
from Athens to Patras had all the exasperating elements of a 
forced recantation. Moreoverhe had not come prepared to 
view with awe the ancient city of Corinth nor to view with 
admiration the limpid beauties of the gulf of that name with its 
olive grove shore. He was not stirred by Parnassusa far-away 
snow-field high on the black shoulders of the mountains across 
the gulf. No; he wished to go to Nikopolis. He passed over the 
graves of an ancient race the gleam of whose mighty minds 
shothardly dimmedthrough the clouding ages. No; he wished 
to go to Nikopolis. The train went at a snail's paceand if 
Coleman bad an interest it was in the people who lined the route 
and cheered the soldiers on the train. In Coleman s compartment there was a 
greasy person who spoke a little English. He explained that he 
was a poeta poet who now wrote of nothing but war. When a 
man is in pursuit of his love and success is known to be at least 
remoteit often relieves his strain if he is deeply bored from time 
to time. 
The train was really obliged to arrive finally at Patras even if it 
was a tortoiseand when this happeneda hotel runner 
appearedwho lied for the benefit of the hotel in saying that 
there was no boat over to Mesalonghi that night. Whenall too 
lateColeman discovered the truth of the matter his wretched 
dragoman came in for a period of infamy and suffering. 
Howeverwhile strolling in the plaza at Patrasamid newsboys 
from every sideby rumour and truthColeman learned things to 
his advantage. A Greek fleet was bombarding Prevasa. Prevasa 
was near Nikopolis. The opposing armies at Arta were 
engagedprincipally in an artillery duel. Arta was on the road from 
Nikopolis into Greece. Hearing this news in the sunlit square 
made him betray no weaknessbut in the darkness of his room 
at the hotelhe seemed to behold Marjory encircled by 
insurmountable walls of flame. He could look out of his window 
into the black night of the north and feel every ounce of a 
hideous circumstance. It appalled him; here was no power of 
calling up a score of reporters and sending them scampering to 
accomplish everything. He even might as well have been without 
a tongue as far as it could serve him in goodly speech. He was 
aloneconfronting the black ominous Turkish north behind which 
were the deadly flames; behind the flames was Marjory. It worked 
upon him until he felt obliged to call in his dragomanand then
seated upon the edge of his bed and waving his pipe eloquentlyhe 
described the plight of some very dear friends who were cut off at 
Nikopolis in Epirus. Some of his talk was almost wistful in its wish 
for sympathy from his servantbut at the end he bade the dragoman 
understand that beColemanwas going to their rescueand he 
defiantly asked the hireling if he was prepared to go with him. 
But he did not know the Greek nature. In two minutes the 
dragoman was weeping tears of enthusiasmandfor these tears
Coleman was over-gratefulbecause he had not been told that 
any of the more crude forms of sentiment arouse the common 
Greek to the highest pitchbut sometimeswhen it comes to 
what the Americans call a "show down when he gets backed 
toward his last corner with a solitary privilege of dying for these 
sentiments, perhaps he does not always exhibit those talents 
which are supposed to be possessed by the bulldog. He often 
then, goes into the cafes and take's it out in oration, like 
any common Parisian. 
In the morning A steamer carried them across the 
strait and landed them near Mesalonghi at the foot of the 
railroad that leads to Agrinion. At Agrinion Coleman at last 
began to feel that he was nearing his goal. There were plenty of 
soldiers in the town, who received with delight and applause 
this gentleman in the distinguished-looking khaki clothes with 
his revolver and his field glasses and his canteen and; his 
dragoman. The dragoman lied, of course, and vocifcrated that 
the gentleman in the distinguished-looking khaki clothes was 
an English soldier of reputation, who had, naturally, come to 
help the cross in its fight against, the crescent. He also said 
that his master had three superb horses coming from Athens in 
charge of a groom, and was undoubtedly going to join the 
cavalry. Whereupon the soldiers wished to embrace and kiss 
the gentleman in the distinguished-looking khaki clothes. 
There was more or less of a scuffle. Coleman would have 
taken to kicking and punching, but he found that by a- series of 
elusive movements he could dodge the demonstrations of 
affection without losing his popularity. Escorted by the 
soldiers, citizens, children and dogs, he went to the diligence 
which was to take him and others the next stage of the journey. 
As the diligence proceeded, Coleman's mind suffered another 
little inroad of ill-fate as to the success of his expedition. In the 
first place it appeared foolish to expect that this diligence 
would ever arrive anywhere. Moreover, the 
accommodations were about equal to what one would endure if 
one undertook to sleep for a night in a tree. Then there was a 
devil-dog, a little black-and-tan terrier in a blanket gorgeous and 
belled, whose duty it was to stand on the top of the coach and 
bark incessantly to keep the driver fully aroused to the enormity 
of his occupation. To have this cur silenced either by 
strangulation or ordinary clubbing, Coleman struggled with his 
dragoman as Jacob struggled with the angel, but in the first 
place, the dragoman was a Greek whose tongue could go quite 
drunk, a Greek who became a slave to the heralding and 
establishment of one certain fact, or lie, and now he was 
engaged in describing to every village and to all the country 
side the prowess of the gentleman in the distinguished-looking 
khaki clothes. It was the general absurdity of this advance to 
the frontier and the fighting, to the crucial place where he was 
resolved to make an attempt to rescue his sweetheart ; it was 
this ridiculous aspect that caused to come to Coleman a 
premonition of failure. No knight ever went out to recover a lost 
love in such a diligence and with such a devil-dog, tinkling his 
little bells and yelping insanely to keep the driver awake. 
After night-fall they arrived at a town on the southern coast 
of the Gulf of Arta and the goaded dragoman was-thrust forth 
from the little inn into the street to find the first possible means 
of getting on to Arta. He returned at last to tremulously say that 
there was no single chance of starting for Arta that night. Where 
upon he was again thrust into the street with orders, strict orders. 
In due time, Coleman spread his rugs upon the floor of his little room 
and thought himself almost asleep,. when the dragoman entered 
with a really intelligent man who, for some reason, had agreed 
to consort with him in the business of getting the stranger off 
to Arta. They announced that there was a brigantine about to 
sail with a load of soldiers for a little port near Arta, and if 
Coleman hurried he could catch it, permission from an officer 
having already been obtained. He was up at once, and the 
dragoman and the unaccountably intelligent person hastily 
gathered his chattels. Stepping out into a black street and 
moving to the edge of black water and embarking in a black 
boat filled with soldiers whose rifles dimly shone, was as 
impressive to Coleman as if, really, it had been the first start. He 
had endured many starts, it was true, but the latest one always 
touched him as being conclusive. 
There were no lights on the brigantine and the men swung 
precariously up her sides to the deck which was already 
occupied by a babbling multitude. The dragoman judiciously 
found a place for his master where during the night the latter 
had to move quickly everytime the tiller was shifted to 
starboard. 
The craft raised her shadowy sails and swung slowly off into 
the deep gloom. Forward, some of the soldiers began to sing 
weird minor melodies. Coleman, enveloped in his rugs, -smoked 
three or four cigars. He was content and miserable, lying there, 
hearing these melodies which defined to him his own affairs. 
At dawn they were at the little port. First, in the carmine and 
grey tints from a sleepy sun, they could see little mobs of 
soldiers working amid boxes of stores. And then from the back 
in some dun and green hills sounded a deep-throated thunder 
of artillery An officer gave Coleman and his dragoman 
positions in one of the first boats, but of course it could not be 
done without an almost endless amount of palaver. Eventually 
they landed with their traps. Coleman felt through the sole of 
his boot his foot upon the shore. He was within striking 
distance. 
But here it was smitten into the head of Coleman's servant to 
turn into the most inefficient dragoman, probably in the entire 
East. Coleman discerned it immediately, before any blunder 
could tell him. He at first thought that it was the voices of the 
guns which had made a chilly inside for the man, but when he 
reflected upon the incompetency, or childish courier's falsity, at 
Patras and his discernible lack of sense from Agrinion onward, 
he felt that the fault was elemental in his nature. It was a mere 
basic inability to front novel situations which was somehow in the 
dragoman; he retreated from everything difficult in a smoke of 
gibberish and gesticulation. Coleman glared at him with the hatred that 
sometimes ensues when breed meets breed, but he saw that 
this man was indeed a golden link in his possible success. This 
man connected him with Greece and its language. If he 
destroyed him he delayed what was now his main desire in life. 
However, this truth did not prevent him from addressing the 
man in elegant speech. 
The two little men who were induced to carry Coleman's 
luggage as far as the Greek camp were really procured by the 
correspondent himself, who pantomined vigourously and with 
unmistakable vividness. Followed by his dragoman and the two 
little men, he strode off along a road which led straight as a 
stick to where the guns were at intervals booming. Meanwhile 
the dragoman and the two little men talked, talked, talked.-
Coleman was silent, puffing his cigar and reflecting upon the 
odd things which happen to chivalry in the modern age. 
He knew of many men who would have been astonished if 
they could have seen into his mind at that time, and he knew of 
many more men who would have laughed if they had the same 
privilege of sight. He made no attempt to conceal from himself 
that the whole thing was romantic, romantic despite the little 
tinkling dog, the decrepit diligence, the palavering 
natives, the super-idiotic dragoman. It was fine, It was from 
another age and even the actors could not deface the purity of 
the picture. However it was true that upon the brigantine the 
previous night he had unaccountably wetted all his available 
matches. This was momentous, important, cruel truth, but 
Coleman, after all, was taking-as well as he could forgeta solemn 
and knightly joy of this adventure and there were as many 
portraits of his lady envisioning. before him as ever held the 
heart of an armour-encased young gentleman of medieval 
poetry. If he had been travelling in this region as an ordinary 
tourist, he would have been apparent mainly for his lofty 
impatience over trifles, but now there was in him a positive 
assertion of direction which was undoubtedly one of the 
reasons for the despair of the accomplished dragoman. 
Before them the country slowly opened and opened, the 
straight white road always piercing it like a lanceshaft. Soon 
they could see black masses of men marking the green knolls. 
The artillery thundered loudly and now vibrated augustly 
through the air. Coleman quickened his pace, to the despair of 
the little men carrying the traps. They finally came up with one 
of these black bodies of men and found it to be composed of a 
considerable number of soldiers who were idly watching some 
hospital people bury a dead Turk. The dragoman at once dashed 
forward to peer through the throng and see the face of the corpse. 
Then he came and supplicated Coleman as if he were hawking him to 
look at a relic and Coleman moved by a strong, mysterious 
impulse, went forward to look at the poor little clay-coloured 
body. At that moment a snake ran out from a tuft of grass at his 
feet and wriggled wildly over the sod. The dragoman shrieked, 
of course, but one of the soldiers put his heel upon the head of 
the reptile and it flung itself into the agonising knot of death. 
Then the whole crowd powwowed, turning from the dead man 
to the dead snake. Coleman signaled his contingent and 
proceeded along the road. 
This incident, this paragraph, had seemed a strange 
introduction to war. The snake, the dead man, the entire sketch, 
made him shudder of itself, but more than anything he felt an 
uncanny symbolism. It was no doubt a mere occurrence; 
nothing but an occurrence; but inasmuch as all the detail of this 
daily life associated itself with Marjory, he felt a different 
horror. He had thought of the little devil-dog and Marjory in an 
interwoven way. Supposing Marjory had been riding in the 
diligence with the devil-dog-a-top ? What would she have said ? 
Of her fund of expressions, a fund uncountable, which would 
she have innocently projected against the background of the 
Greek hills? Would it have smitten her nerves badly or would 
she have laughed ? And supposing Marjory 
could have seen him in his new khaki clothes cursing his 
dragoman as he listened to the devil-dog? 
And now he interwove his memory of Marjory with a dead 
man and with a snake in the throes of the end of life. They 
crossed, intersected, tangled, these two thoughts. He perceived 
it clearly; the incongruity of it. He academically reflected upon 
the mysteries of the human mind, this homeless machine which 
lives here and then there and often lives in two or three 
opposing places at the same instant. He decided that the 
incident of the snake and the dead man had no more meaning 
than the greater number of the things which happen to us in our 
daily lives. Nevertheless it bore upon him. 
On a spread of plain they saw a force drawn up in a long line. 
It was a flagrant inky streak on the verdant prairie. From 
somewhere near it sounded the timed reverberations of guns. 
The brisk walk of the next ten minutes was actually exciting to 
Coleman. He could not but reflect that those guns were being 
fired with serious purpose at certain human bodies much like 
his own. 
As they drew nearer they saw that the inky streak was 
composed of cavalry, the troopers standing at their bridles. The 
sunlight flicked, upon their bright weapons. Now the dragoman 
developed in one of his extraordinary directions. He announced 
forsooth that an intimate friend was a captain of cavalry in this 
command. Coleman at first thought. that this was some kind of 
mysterious lie, but when he arrived where they could hear the 
stamping of hoofs, the clank of weapons, and the murmur of 
men, behold, a most dashing young officer gave a shout of joy 
and he and the dragoman hurled themselves into a mad 
embrace. After this first ecstacy was over, the dragoman 
bethought him of his employer, and looking toward Coleman 
hastily explained him to the officer. The latter, it appeared, was 
very affable indeed. Much had happened. The Greeks and the 
Turks had been fighting over a shallow part of the river nearly 
opposite this point and the Greeks had driven back the Turks 
and succeeded in throwing a bridge of casks and planking 
across the stream. It was now the duty and the delight of this 
force of cavalry to cross the bridge and, passing, the little force 
of covering Greek infantry, to proceed into Turkey until they 
came in touch with the enemy. 
Coleman's eyes dilated. Was ever fate less perverse ? Partly 
in wretched French to the officer and partly in idiomatic English 
to the dragoman, he proclaimed his fiery desire to accompany 
the expedition. The officer immediately beamed upon him. In 
fact, he was delighted. The dragoman had naturally told him 
many falsehoods concerning Coleman, incidentally referring to 
himself more as a philanthropic guardian and, valuable friend of 
the correspondent than as, a plain, unvarnished. dragoman 
with an exceedingly good eye for the financial possibilities of 
his position. 
Coleman wanted to ask his servant if there was any chance of 
the scout taking them near Nikopolis, but he delayed being 
informed upon this point until such time as he could find out, 
secretly, for himself. To ask the dragoman would be mere stupid 
questioning which would surely make the animal shy. He tried 
to be content that fate had given him this early opportunity of 
dealing with a Medieval situation with some show of proper 
form ; that is to say, armed, a-horse- back, and in danger. Then 
he could feel that to the gods of the game he was not laughable, 
as when he rode to rescue his love in a diligence with a devildog 
yelping a-top. 
With some flourish, the young captain presented him to the 
major who commanded the cavalry. This officer stood with his 
legs wide apart, eating the rind of a fresh lemon and talking 
betimes to some of his officers. The major also beamed upon 
Coleman when the captain explained that the gentleman in the 
distinguished-looking khaki clothes wished to accompany the 
expedition. He at once said that he would provide two troop 
horses for Coleman and the dragoman. Coleman thanked fate 
for his behaviour and his satisfaction was not without a vestige 
of surprise. At that time he judged it to be a remarkable 
amiability of individuals, but in later years he came to believe in 
certain laws which he deemed existent solely for the benefit of 
war correspondents. In the minds of governments, war offices 
and generals they have no function save one of disturbance, but 
Coleman deemed it proven that the common men, and many 
uncommon men, when they go away to the fighting ground, out 
of the sight, out of the hearing of the world known to them, and 
are eager to perform feats of war in this new place, they feel an 
absolute longing for a spectator. It is indeed the veritable 
coronation of this world. There is not too much vanity of the 
street in this desire of men to have some disinterested fellows 
perceive their deeds. It is merely that a man doing his best in the 
middle of a sea of war, longs to have people see him doing his 
best. This feeling is often notably serious if, in peace, a man has 
done his worst, or part of his worst. Coleman believed that, 
above everybody, young, proud and brave subalterns had this 
itch, but it existed, truly enough, from lieutenants to colonels. 
None wanted to conceal from his left hand that his right hand 
was performing a manly and valiant thing, although there might 
be times when an application of the principle would be 
immensely convenient. The war correspondent arises, then, to 
become a sort of a cheap telescope for the people at home; 
further still, there have been fights where the eyes of a solitary 
man were the eyes of the world; one spectator, whose business 
it was to transfer, according to his ability, his visual impressions 
to other minds. 
Coleman and his servant were conducted to two saddled 
troop horses, and beside them, waited decently in the rear of 
the ranks. The uniform of the troopers was of plain, dark green 
cloth and they were well and sensibly equipped. The mounts, 
however, had in no way been picked; there were little horses 
and big horses, fat horses and thin horses. They looked the 
result of a wild conscription. Coleman noted the faces of the 
troopers, and they were calm enough save when a man 
betrayed himself by perhaps a disproportionate angry jerk at 
the bridle of his restive horse. 
The major, artistically drooping his cloak from his left 
shoulder and tenderly and musingly fingering his long yellow 
moustache, rode slowly to the middle of the line and wheeled 
his horse to face his men. A bugle called attention, and then he 
addressed them in a loud and rapid speech, which did not seem 
to have an end. Coleman imagined that the major was paying 
tribute to the Greek tradition of the power of oratory. Again the 
trumpet rang out, and this parade front swung off into column 
formation. Then Coleman and the dragoman trotted at the tail of 
the squadron, restraining with difficulty their horses, who could 
not understand their new places in the procession, and worked 
feverishly to regain what they considered their positions in life. 
The column jangled musically over the sod, passing between 
two hills on one of which a Greek light battery was posted. Its 
men climbed to the tops of their interenchments to witness the 
going of the cavalry. Then the column curved along over ditch 
and through hedge to the shallows of the river. Across this 
narrow stream was Turkey. Turkey, however, presented 
nothing to the eye but a muddy bank with fringes of trees back 
of it. It seemed to be a great plain with sparse collections of 
foliage marking it, whereas the Greek side, presented in the 
main a vista of high, gaunt rocks. Perhaps one of the first 
effects of war upon the mind, is a. new recognition and fear of 
the circumscribed ability of the eye, making all landscape seem 
inscrutable. The cavalry drew up in platoon formation on their 
own. bank of the stream and waited. If Coleman had known 
anything of war, he would have known, from appearances, that 
there was nothing in the immediate vicinity to, cause heartjumping, 
but as a matter of truth he was deeply moved and 
wondered what was hidden, what was veiled by those trees. 
Moreover, the squadrons resembled art old picture of a body of 
horse awaiting Napoleon's order to charge. In the, meantime his 
mount fumed at the bit, plunging to get back to the ranks. The 
sky was, without a cloud, and the sun rays swept down upon 
them. Sometimes Coleman was on the verge of addressing the 
dragoman, according to his anxiety, but in the end 
he simply told him to go to the river and fill the can- teens. 
At last an order came, and the first troop moved with muffled 
tumult across the bridge. Coleman and his dragoman followed 
the last troop. The horses scrambled up the muddy bank much 
as if they were merely breaking out of a pasture, but probably all 
the men felt a sudden tightening of their muscles. Coleman, in 
his excitement, felt, more than he saw, glossy horse flanks, 
green-clothed men chumping in their saddles, banging sabres 
and canteens, and carbines slanted in line. 
There were some Greek infantry in a trench. They were 
heavily overcoated, despite the heat, and some were engaged in 
eating loaves of round, thick bread. They called out lustily as 
the cavalry passed them. The troopers smiled slowly, 
somewhat proudly in response. 
Presently there was another halt and Coleman saw the major 
trotting busily here and there, while troop commanders rode out 
to meet him. Spreading groups of scouts and flankers moved off 
and disappeared. Their dashing young officer friend cantered 
past them with his troop at his heels. He waved a joyful goodbye. 
It was the doings of cavalry in actual service, horsemen 
fanning out in all forward directions. There were two troops 
held in reserve, and as they jangled ahead at a foot pace, 
Coleman and his dragoman followed them. 
The dragoman was now moved to erect many reasons for an 
immediate return. It was plain that he had no stomach at all for 
this business, and that he wished himself safely back on the 
other side of the river. Coleman looked at him askance. When 
these men talked together Coleman might as well have been a 
polar bear for all he understood of it. When he saw the 
trepidation of his dragoman, he did not know what it foreboded. 
In this situation it was not for him to say that the dragoman's 
fears were founded on nothing. And ever the dragoman raised 
his reasons for a retreat. Coleman spoke to himself. I am just a 
trifle rattled he said to his heart, and after he had communed 
for a time upon the duty of steadiness, he addressed the 
dragoman in cool language. Nowmy persuasive friendjust 
quit all thatbecause business is businessand it may be rather 
annoying businessbut you will have to go through with it." 
Long afterwardwhen ruminating over the feelings of that 
morninghe saw with some astonishment that there was not a 
single thing within sound or sight to cause a rational being any 
quaking. He was simply riding with some soldiers over a vast 
tree-dotted prairie. 
Presently the commanding officer turned in his saddle and 
told the dragoman that he was going to ride forward with his 
orderly to where he could see the flanking parties and the 
scoutsand courteouslywith 
the manner of a gentleman entertaining two guestshe asked if 
the civilians cared to accompany him. The dragoman would not 
have passed this question correctly on to Coleman if he had 
thought he could have avoided itbutwith both men regarding 
himhe considered that a lie probably meant instant detection. 
He spoke almost the truthcontenting himself with merely 
communicating to Coleman in a subtle way his sense that a ride 
forward with the commanding officer and his orderly would be 
depressing and dangerous occupation. But Coleman 
immediately accepted the invitation mainly because it was the 
invitation of the majorand in war it is a brave man who can 
refuse the invitation of a commanding officer. The little party of 
four trotted away from the reservescurving in single file about 
the water-holes. In time they arrived at where the plain lacked 
trees and was one great green lake of grass; grass and scrubs. 
On this expanse they could see the Greek horsemen ridingmainly 
appearing as little black dots. Far to the left there was a squad 
said to be composed of only twenty troopersbut in the 
distance their black mass seemed to be a regiment. 
As the officer and his guests advanced they came in view of 
what one may call the shore of the plain. The rise of ground was 
heavily clad with treesand over the tops of them appeared the 
cupola and part of the walls of a large white houseand there 
were glimpses of huts near it as if a village was marked. The black 
specks seemed to be almost to it. The major galloped forward 
and the others followed at his pace. The house grew larger and 
larger and they came nearly to the advance scouts who they 
could now see were not quite close to the village. There had 
been a deception of the eye precisely as occurs at sea. Herds of 
unguarded sheep drifted over the plain and little ownerless 
horsesstill cruelly hobbledleaped painfully awayfrightened
as if they understood that an anarchy had come upon them. The 
party rode until they were very nearly up with the scoutsand 
then from low down at the very edge of the plain there came a 
long rattling noise which endured as if some kind of grinding 
machine had been put in motion. Smoke arosefaintly marking 
the position of an intrenchment. Sometimes a swift spitting 
could be heard from the air over the party. 
It was Coleman's fortune to think at first that the Turks were 
not firing in his directionbut as soon as he heard the weird 
voices in the air he knew that war was upon him. But it was 
plain that the range was almost excessiveplain even to his 
ignorance. The major looked at him and laughed; he found no 
difficulty in smiling in response. If this was warit could be 
withstood somehow. He could not at this time understand what 
a mere trifle was the present incident. He felt upon his cheek a 
little breeze which was moving the grass-blades. He had tied his 
canteen in a wrong place on the saddle and every time the horse moved 
quickly the canteen banged the correspondentto his annoyance and 
distressforcibly on the knee. He had forgotten about his 
dragomanbut happening to look upon that faithful servitorhe 
saw him gone white with horror. A bullet at that moment 
twanged near his head and the slave to fear ducked in a spasm. 
Coleman called the orderly's attention and they both laughed 
discreetly. They made no pretension of being heroesbut they 
saw plainly that they were better than this man. 
Coleman said to him : " How far is it now to Nikopolis ? " The 
dragoman replied onlywith a look of agonized impatience. 
But of course there was no going to Nikopolis that day. The 
officer had advanced his men as far as was intended by his 
superiorsand presently they were all recalled and trotted back 
to the bridge. They crossed it to their old camp. 
An important part of Coleman's traps was back with his 
Athenian horses and their groombut with his present 
equipment he could at least lie smoking on his blankets and 
watch the dragoman prepare food. But he reflected that for that 
day he had only attained the simple discovery that the 
approach to Nikopolis was surrounded with difficulties. 
CHAPTER X. 
The same afternoon Coleman and the dragoman rode up to 
Arta on their borrowed troop horses. The correspondent first 
went to the telegraph office and found there the usual number 
of despairing clerks. They were outraged when they found he 
was going to send messages and thought it preposterous that 
he insisted upon learning if there were any in the office for him. 
They had trouble enough with endless official communications 
without being hounded about private affairs by a confident 
young man in khaki. But Coleman at last unearthed six 
cablegrams which collective said that the Eclipse wondered why 
they did not hear from himthat Walkley had been relieved from 
duty in London and sent to join the army of the 
crown princethat young Pointthe artisthad been 
shipped to Greecethat if heColemansucceeded in 
finding the Wainwright party the paper was prepared 
to make a tremendous uproar of a celebration over it 
andfinallythe paper wondered twice more why they 
did not hear from him. 
When Coleman went forth to enquire if anybody knew of the 
whereabouts of the Wainwright party he thought first of his 
fellow correspondents. He found 
most of them in a cafe where was to be had about the only food 
in the soldier-laden town. It was a slothful den where even an 
ordinary boiled egg could be made unpalatable. Such a common 
matter as the salt men watched with greed and suspicion as if 
they were always about to grab it from each other. The 
proprietorin a dirty shirtcould always be heard whining
evidently telling the world that he was being abusedbut he had 
spirit enough remaining to charge three prices for everything 
with an almost Jewish fluency. 
The correspondents consoled themselves largely upon black bread 
and the native wines. Also there were certain little oiled 
fishesand some green odds and ends for salads. The 
correspondents were practically all Englishmen. Some of them 
were veterans of journalism in the Sudanin Indiain South 
Africa; and there were others who knew as much of war as they 
could learn by sitting at a desk and editing the London stock 
reports. Some were on their own hook; some had horses and 
dragomen and some had neither the one nor the other; many 
knew how to write and a few had it yet to learn. The thing in 
common was a spirit of adventure which found pleasure in the 
extraordinary business of seeing how men kill each other. 
They were talking of an artillery duel which had been fought 
the previous day between the Greek batteries above the town 
and the Turkish batteries across the river. Coleman 
took seat at one of the long tablesand the 
astute dragoman got somebody in the street to hold the horses 
in order that he might be present at any feasting. 
One of the experienced correspondents was remarking that 
the fire of the Greek batteries in the engagement had been the 
finest artillery practice of the century. He spoke a little loudly
perhapsin the wistful hope that some of the Greek officers 
would understand enough English to follow his meaningfor it 
is always good for a correspondent to admire the prowess on 
his own side of the battlefield. After a time Coleman spoke in a 
lulland describing the supposed misfortunes of the 
Wainwright partyasked if anyone had news of them. The 
correspondents were surprised; they had none of them heard 
even of the existence of a Wainwright party. Also none of them 
seemed to care exceedingly. The conversation soon changed to 
a discussion of the probable result of the general Greek 
advance announced for the morrow. 
Coleman silently commented that this remarkable appearance 
of indifference to the mishap of the Wainwrightsa little partya 
single groupwas a better definition of a real condition of war 
than that bit of long-range musketry of the morning. He took a 
certain despatch out of his pocket and again read it. " Find 
Wainwright party at all hazards; much talk here; success 
means red fire by ton. Eclipse." It 
was an important matter. He could imagine how the American 
peoplevibrating for years to stories of the cruelty of the Turk
would tremble-indeedwas now trembling-while the 
newspapers howled out the dire possibilities. He saw all the 
kinds of peoplefrom those who would read the Wainwright 
chapters from day to day as a sort of sensational novelto 
those who would work up a gentle sympathy for the woe of 
others around the table in the evenings. He saw bar keepers 
and policemen taking a high gallery thrill out of this kind of 
romance. He saw even the emotion among American colleges 
over the tragedy of a professor and some students. It 
certainly was a big affair. Marjory of course was everything in 
one waybut thatto the worldwas not a big affair. It was the 
romance of the Wainwright party in its simplicity that to the 
American world was arousing great sensation; one that in the 
old days would have made his heart leap like a colt. 
Stillwhen batteries had fought each other savagelyand 
horsefoot and guns were now about to make a general 
advanceit was difficulthe could seeto stir men to think and 
feel out of the present zone of action; to adopt for a time in fact 
the thoughts and feelings of the other side of the world. It made 
Coleman dejected as he saw clearly that the task was wholly on 
his own shoulders. 
Of course they were men who when at home 
manifested the most gentle and wide-reaching feelings; most of 
them could not by any possibility have slapped a kitten merely 
for the prank and yet all of them who had seen an unknown 
man shot through the head in battle had little more to think of it 
than if the man had been a rag-baby. Tender they might be; 
poets they might be; but they were all horned with a 
provisionaltemporarybut absolutely essential callouse which 
was formed by their existence amid war with its quality of 
making them always think of the sights and sounds concealed 
in their own direct future. 
They had been simply polite. " Yes ? " said one to Coleman. 
How many people in the party? Are they all Americans? Oh, I 
suppose it will be quite right. Your minister in Constantinople 
will arrange that easily. Where did you say? At Nikopolis? 
Well, we conclude that the Turks will make no stand between 
here and Pentepigadia. In that case your Nikopolis will be 
uncovered unless the garrison at Prevasa intervenes. That 
garrison at Prevasa, by the way, may make a deal of trouble. 
Remember Plevna.
 Exactly how far is it to Nikopolis? asked Coleman. 
 Oh, I think it is about thirty kilometers,replied the 
others. " There is a good miltary road as soon as you cross the 
Louros river. I've got the map of the Austrian general staff. 
Would you like to look at it?" 
Coleman studied the mapspeeding with his eye rapidly to 
and fro between Arta and Nikopolis. To him it was merely a 
brown lithograph of mysterybut he could study the distances. 
He had received a cordial invitation from the commander 
of the cavalry to go with him for another ride 
into Turkeyand he inclined to believe that his project 
would be furthered if he stuck close to the cavalry. So 
he rode back to the cavalry camp and went 
peacefully to sleep on the sod. He awoke in the 
morning with chattering teeth to find his dragoman 
saying that the major had unaccountably withdrawn 
his loan of the two troop horses. Coleman of course 
immediately said to himself that the dragoman was 
lying a-gain in order to prevent another expedition 
into ominous Turkeybut after all if the commander
of the cavalry had suddenly turned the light of his 
favour from the correspondent it was only a proceeding 
consistent with the nature which Coleman now 
thought he was beginning to discerna nature which 
can never think twice in the same placea gageous 
mind which driftsdissolvescombinesvanishes with 
the ability of an aerial thing until the man of the 
north feels that when he clutches it with full knowledge of his 
senses he is only the victim of his ardent 
imagination. It is the difference in standardsin 
creedswhich is the more luminous when men call out that 
they are all alike. 
So Coleman and his dragoman loaded their traps and moved 
out to again invade Turkey. It was not yet clear daylightbut 
they felt that they might well start early since they were no 
longer mounted men. 
On the way to the bridgethe dragomanalthough he was 
curiously in love with his forty francs a day and his 
opportunitiesventured a stout protestbased apparently upon 
the fact that after all this foreignerfour days out from Athens 
was somewhat at his mercy. " Meester Coleman he said, 
stopping suddenly, I think we make no good if we go there. 
Much better we wait Arta for our horse. Much better. I think 
this no good. There is coming one big fight and I think much 
better we go stay Arta. Much better." 
 Oh, come off,said Coleman. And in clear language he 
began to labour with the man. " Look herenowif you think 
you are engaged in steering a bunch of wooden-headed guys 
about the Acropolismy dear partner of my joys and sorrows
you are extremely mistaken. As a matter of fact you are now the 
dragoman of a war correspondent and you were engaged and 
are paid to be one. It becomes necessary that you make good. 
Make gooddo you understand? I'm not out here to be buncoed 
by this sort of game." He continued indefinitely in this strain 
and at intervals he asked sharply Do you understand ? 
Perhaps the dragoman was dumbfounded that the laconic 
Coleman could on occasion talk so muchor perhaps he 
understood everything and was impressed by the 
argumentative power. At any rate he suddenly wilted. He made 
a gesture which was a protestation of martyrdom and picking up 
his burden proceeded on his way. 
When they reached the bridgethey saw strong columns of 
Greek infantrydead black in the dim lightcrossing the stream 
and slowly deploying on the other shore. It was a bracing sight 
to the dragomanwho then went into one of his absurd 
babbling moodsin which he would have talked the head off 
any man who was not born in a country laved by the childish 
Mediterranean. Coleman could not understand what he said to 
the soldiers as they passedbut it was evidently all grandiose 
nonsense. 
Two light batteries had precariously crossed the rickety 
bridge during the nightand now this force of several thousand 
infantrywith the two batterieswas moving out over the 
territory which the cavalry had reconnoitered on the previous 
day. The ground being familiar to Colemanhe no longer knew a 
tremourandregarding his dragomanhe saw that that 
invaluable servitor was also in better form. They marched until 
they found one of the light batteries unlimbered and aligned on 
the lake of grass about a mile from where parts of the white 
house appeared above the tree-tops. Here the dragoman talked 
with the captain of artillerya tiny man on an immense horse
who for some unknown reason told him that this force was going 
to raid into Turkey and try to swing around the opposing army's 
right flank. He announcedas he showed his teeth in a smile
that it would be veryvery dangerous work. The dragoman 
precipitated himself upon Coleman. 
 This is much danger. The copten he tell me the trups go 
now in back of the Turks. It will be much danger. I think much 
better we go Arta wait for horse. Much better.Coleman
although be believed he despised the dragomancould not help 
but be influenced by his fears. They wereso to speakin a 
room with one windowand only the dragoman looked forth 
from the windowso if he said that what he saw outside 
frightened himColeman was perforce frightened also in a 
measure. But when the correspondent raised 
his eyes he saw the captain of the battery looking at himhis 
teeth still showing in a smileas if his informationwhether true 
or falsehad been given to convince the foreigner that the 
Greeks were a very superior and brave peoplenotably one little 
officer of artillery. He had apparently assumed that Coleman 
would balk from venturing with such a force upon an excursion 
to trifle with the rear of a hard fighting Ottoman army. He 
exceedingly disliked that mansitting up there on his tall horse 
and grinning like a cruel little ape with a secret. In truth
Coleman was taken back at the outlookbut he could no more refrain 
from instantly accepting this half-concealed challenge than he could 
have refrained from resenting an ordinary form of insult. His mind was 
not at peacebut the small vanities are very large. He was perfectly 
aware that he wasbeing misled into the thing by an odd pridebut 
anyhowit easily might turn out to be a stroke upon the doors of 
Nikopolis. He nodded and smiled at the officer in grateful 
acknowledgment of his service. 
The infantry was moving steadily a-field. Black blocks of men 
were trailing in column slowly over the plain. They were not 
unlike the backs of dominoes on a green baize table ; they were 
so vividso startling. The correspondent and his servant 
followed them. Eventually they overtook two companies in 
command of a captainwho seemed immensely glad to have the 
strangers with him. As they marchedthe captain spoke through 
the dragoman upon the virtues of his menannouncing with 
other news the fact that his first sergeant was the bravest man in 
the world. 
A number of columns were moving across the plain parallel to 
their line of marchand the whole force seemed to have orders 
to halt when they reached a long ditch about four hundred yards 
from where the shore of the plain arose to the luxuriant groves 
with the cupola of the big white house sticking above them. The 
soldiers lay along the ditchand the bravest man in the world 
spread his blanket on the ground for the captainColeman and 
himself. During a long pause Coleman tried to elucidate the question 
of why the Greek soldiers wore heavy overcoatseven in the bitter 
heat of middaybut he could only learn that the dewswhen they 
camewere very destructive to the lungsFurtherhe convinced himself 
anew that talking through an interpreter to the minds of other 
men was as satisfactory as looking at landscape through a 
stained glass window. 
After a time there wasin fronta stir near where a curious 
hedge of dry brambles seemed to outline some sort of a garden 
patch. Many of the soldiers exclaimed and raised their guns. But 
there seemed to come a general understanding to the line that it 
was wrong to fire. Then presently into the open came a dirty 
brown figureand Coleman could see through his glasses that 
its head was crowned with a dirty fez which had once been 
white. This indicated that the figure was that of one of the 
Christian peasants of Epirus. Obedient to the captainthe 
sergeant arose and waved invitation. The peasant wavered
changed his mindwas obviously terror-strickenregained 
confidence and then began to advance circuitously toward 
the Greek lines. When he arrived within hailing dis- tancethe 
captainthe sergeantColeman's dragoman and many of the 
soldiers yelled human messagesand a moment later he was 
seen to be a pooryellow-faced stripling with a body which 
seemed to have been first twisted by an ill-birth and afterward 
maimed by either labour or oppressionthese being often 
identical in their effects. 
His reception of the Greek soldiery was no less fervid than 
their welcome of him to their protection. He threw his grimy fez 
in the air and croaked out cheerswhile tears wet his cheeks. 
When he had come upon the right side of the ditch he ran 
capering among them and the captainthe sergeantthe 
dragoman and a number of soldiers received wild embraces and 
kisses. He made a dash at Colemanbut Coleman was now wary 
in the gameand retired dexterously behind different groups 
with a finished appearance of not noting that the young man 
wished to greet him. 
Behind the hedge of dry brambles there were more 
indications of lifeand the peasant stood up and made 
beseeching gestures. Soon a whole flock of miserable people 
had come out to the Greeksmenwomen and childrenin crude 
and comic smocksprancing here and thereuproariously 
embracing and kissing their deliverers. An oldtearfultoothless 
hag flung herself rapturously into the arms of the captainand 
Coleman's brick-and-iron soul was moved to admiration 
at the way in which the officer administered a chaste salute 
upon the furrowed cheek. The dragoman told the 
correspondent that the Turks had run away from the village on 
up a valley toward Jannina. Everybody was proud and happy. 
A major of infantry came from the rear at this time and asked 
the captain in sharp tones who were the two strangers in 
civilian attire. When the captain had answered correctly the 
major was immediately mollifiedand had it announced to the 
correspondent that his battalion was going to move 
immediately into the villageand that he would be delighted to 
have his company. 
The major strode at the head of his men with the group of 
villagers singing and dancing about him and looking upon him 
as if he were a god. Coleman and the dragomanat the officer's 
requestmarched one on either side of himand in this manner 
they entered the village. From all sorts of hedges and thickets
people came creeping out to pass into a delirium of joy. The 
major borrowed three little pack horses with rope-bridlesand 
thus mounted and followed by the clanking columnthey rode 
on in triumph. 
It was probably more of a true festival than most men 
experience even in the longest life time. The major with his 
Greek instinct of drama was a splendid personification of poetic 
quality; in fact he was himself almost a lyric. From time to time 
he glanced back at Coleman with eyes half dimmed with appreciation. 
The people gathered flowersgreat blossoms of purple and corn colour. 
They sprinkled them over the three horsemen and flung them 
deliriously under the feet of the little nags. Being now mounted 
Coleman had no difficulty in avoiding the embraces of the 
peasantsbut he felt to the tips of his toes an abandonment to a 
kind of pleasure with which he was not at all familiar. Riding 
thus amid cries of thanksgiving addressed at him equally with 
the othershe felt a burning virtue and quite lost his old self in 
an illusion of noble be. nignity. And there continued the 
fragrant hail of blossoms. 
Miserable little huts straggled along the sides of the village 
street as if they were following at the heels of the great white 
house of the bey. The column proceeded northward
announcing laughingly to the glad villagers that they would 
never see another Turk. Before them on the road was here and 
there a fez from the head of a fled Turkish soldier and they lay 
like drops of blood from some wounded leviathan. Ultimately it 
grew cloudy. It even rained slightly. In the misty downfall the 
column of soldiers in blue was dim as if it were merely a long 
trail of low-hung smoke. 
They came to the ruins of a church and there the major 
halted his battalion. Coleman worried at his dragoman to 
learn if the halt was only temporary. It was a long time before 
there was answer from the majorfor he had drawn up his men in platoons 
and was addressing them in a speech as interminable as any that 
Coleman had heard in Greece. The officer waved his arms and 
roared out evidently the glories of patriotism and soldierly 
honourthe glories of their ancient peopleand he may have 
included any subject in this wonderful speechfor the reason 
that he had plenty of time in which to do it. It was impossible to 
tell whether the oration was a good one or bad onebecause the 
men stood in their loose platoons without discernible feelings 
as if to them this appeared merely as one of the inevitable 
consequences of a campaignan established rule of warfare. 
Coleman ate black bread and chocolate tablets while the 
dragoman hovered near the major with the intention of 
pouncing upon him for information as soon as his lungs yielded 
to the strain upon them. 
The dragoman at last returned with a very long verbal 
treatise from the majorwho apparently had not been as 
exhausted after his speech to the men as one would think. The 
major had said that he had been ordered to halt here to form a 
junction with some of the troops coming direct from Artaand 
that he expected that in the morning the army would be 
divided and one wing would chase the retreating Turks on 
toward Janninawhile the other wing would advance upon 
Prevasa because the enemy had a garrison there which had not 
retreated an inchandalthough it was 
cut offit was necessary to send either a force to hold it in its 
place or a larger force to go through with the business of 
capturing it. Else there would be left in the rear of the left flank 
of a Greek advance upon Jannina a body of the enemy which at 
any moment might become active. The major said that his 
battalion would probably form part of the force to advance 
upon Prevasa. Nikopolis was on the road to Prevasa and only 
three miles away from it. 
CHAPTER XI. 
Coleman spent a long afternoon in the drizzle Enveloped in 
his macintosh he sat on a boulder in the lee of one of the old 
walls and moodily smoked cigars and listened to the ceaseless 
clatter of tongues. A ray of light penetrated the mind of the 
dragoman and he laboured assiduously with wet fuel until he 
had accomplished a tin mug of coffee. Bits of cinder floated in 
itbut Coleman rejoiced and was kind to the dragoman. 
The night was of cruel monotony. Afflicted by the wind and 
the darknessthe correspondent sat with nerves keyed high 
waiting to hear the pickets open fire on a night attack. He was 
so unaccountably sure that there would be a tumult and panic 
of this kind at some time of the night that he prevented himself 
from getting a reasonable amount of rest. He could hear the 
soldiers breathing in sleep all about him. He wished to arouse 
them from this slumber whichto his ignoranceseemed stupid. 
The quality of mysterious menace in the great gloom and the 
silence would have caused him to pray if prayer would have 
transported him magically to New York and made him a young 
man with no coat playing billiards at his club. 
The chill dawn came at last and with a fine elation which ever 
follows a dismal night in war; an elation which bounds in the 
bosom as soon as day has knocked the shackles from a 
trembling mind. Although Coleman had slept but a short time he 
was now as fresh as a total abstainer coming from the bath. He 
heard the creak of battery wheels; he saw crawling bodies of 
infantry moving in the dim light like ghostly processions. He felt 
a tremendous virility come with this new hope in the daylight. 
He again took satis. faction in his sentimental journey. It was a 
shining affair. He was on active servicean active service of the 
heartand he' felt that he was a strong man ready to conquer 
difficulty even as the olden heroes conquered difficulty. He 
imagined himself in a way like them. Hetoohad come out to 
fight for love with giantsdragons and witches. He had never 
known that he could be so pleased with that kind of a parallel. 
The dragoman announced that the major had suddenly lent 
their horses to some other peopleand after cursing this 
versatility of interesthe summoned his henchmen and they 
moved out on footfollowing the sound of the creaking wheels. 
They came in time to a bridgeand on the side of this bridge 
was a hard military road which sprang away in two directions
north and west. Some troops were creeping out the westward 
way and the dragoman pointing at them 
said: " They going Prevasa. That is road to Nikopolis." 
Coleman grinned from ear to car and slapped 
his dragoman violently on the shoulder. For a moment he 
intended to hand the man a louis of rewardbut he changed his 
mind. 
Their traps were in the way of being heavybut they minded 
little since the dragoman was now a victim of the influence of 
Coleman's enthusiasm. The road wound along the base of the 
mountain rangesheering around the abutments in wide white 
curves and then circling into glens where immense trees spread 
their shade over it. Some of the great trunks were oppressed 
with vines green as garlandsand these vines even ran like 
verdant foam over the rocks. Streams of translucent water 
showered down from the hillsand made pools in which every 
pebbleevery eaf of a water plant shone with magic lustreand if 
the bottom of a pool was only of claythe clay glowed with 
sapphire light. The day was fair. The country was part of that 
land which turned the minds of its ancient poets toward a more 
tender dreamingso that indeed their nymphs would dieone is 
surein the cold mythology of the north with its storms amid the 
gloom of pine forests. It was all wine to Coleman's spirit. It 
enlivened him to think of success with absolute surety. To be 
sure one of his boots began soon to rasp his toesbut he gave 
it no share of his attention. They passed at a much faster pace 
than the troopsand everywhere they met laughter and confidence 
and the cry. " On to Prevasa! " 
At midday they were at the heels of the advance battalion
among its stragglerstaking its white dust into their throats and 
eyes. The dragoman was waning and he made a number of 
attempts to stay Colemanbut no one could have had influence 
upon Coleman's steady rush with his eyes always straight to 
the front as if thus to symbolize his steadiness of purpose. 
Rivulets of sweat marked the dust on his faceand two of his 
toes were now paining as if they were being burned off. He was 
obliged to concede a privilege of limpingbut he would not 
stop. 
At nightfall they halted with the outpost batallion of the 
infantry. All the cavalry had in the meantirne come up and they 
saw their old friends. There was a village from which the 
Christian peasants came and cheered like a trained chorus. 
Soldiers were driving a great flock of fat sheep into a corral. 
They had belonged to a Turkish bey and they bleated as if they 
knew that they were now mere spoils of war. Coleman lay on the 
steps of the bey's house smoking with his head on his blanket 
roll. Camp fires glowed off in the fields. He was now about four 
miles from Nikopolis. 
Within the housethe commander of the cavalry was writing 
dispatches. Officers clanked up and down the stairs. The 
dashing young captain came and said that there would be a general 
assault on Prevasa at the dawn of the next day. Afterward the dragoman 
descended upon the village and in some way wrenched a little grey horse 
from an inhabitant. Its pack saddle was on its back and it would 
very handily carry the traps. In this matter the dragoman did not 
consider his master; he considered his own sore back. 
Coleman ate more bread and chocolate tablets and also some 
tinned sardines. He was content with the day's work. He did not 
see how he could have improved it. There was only one route by 
which the Wainwright party could avoid himand that was by 
going to Prevasa and thence taking ship. But since Prevasa was 
blockaded by a Greek fleethe conceived that event to be 
impossible. Hencehe had them hedged on this peninsula and 
they must be either at Nikopolis or Prevasa. He would probably 
know all early in the morning. He reflected that he was too tired 
to care if there might be a night attack and then wrapped in his 
blankets he went peacefully to sleep in the grass under a big 
tree with the crooning of some soldiers around their fire 
blending into his slumber. 
And nowalthough the dragoman had performed a number of 
feats of incapacityhe achieved during the one hour of 
Coleman's sleeping a blunder which for real finish was simply a 
perfection of art. When Colemanmuch laterextracted the full 
storyit appeared that ringing. events happened during that single 
hour of sleep. Ten minutes after he had lain down for a night of 
oblivionthe battalion of infantrywhich had advanced a little beyond 
the villagewas recalled and began a hurried night march back on the 
way it had so festively come. It was significant enough to appeal 
to almost any mindbut the dragoman was able to not 
understand it. He remained jabbering to some acquaintances 
among the troopers. Coleman had been asleep his hour when the 
dashing young captain perceived the dragomanand completely 
horrified by his presence at that placeran to him and whispered 
to him swiftly that the game was to fleefleeflee. The wing of the 
army which had advanced northward upon Jannina had already 
been tumbled back by the Turks and all the other wing had been 
recalled to the Louros river and there was now nothing practically 
between him and his sleeping master and the enemy but a cavalry 
picket. The cavalry was immediately going to make a forced 
march to the rear. The stricken dragoman could even then see 
troopers getting into their saddles. Herushed tothetreeand 
in. a panic simply bundled Coleman upon his feet before he was 
awake. He stuttered out his taleand the dazedcorrespondent 
heard it punctuated by the steady trample of the retiring cavalry. 
The dragoman saw a man's face then turn in a flash from an 
expression of luxurious drowsiness to an expression of utter 
malignancy. Howeverhe was in too much of a hurry to be afraid 
of it; he ran off to the little grey horse and frenziedly but 
skilfully began to bind the traps upon the packsaddle. He 
appeared in a moment tugging at the halter. He could only 
say: "Come! Come! Come! Queek! Queek! " They slid hurriedly 
down a bank to the road and started to do again that which 
they had accomplished with considerable expenditure of 
physical power during the day. The hoof beats of the cavalry 
had already died away and the mountains shadowed them in 
lonely silence. They were the rear guard after the rear guard. 
The dragoman muttered hastily his last dire rumours. Five 
hundred Circassian cavalry were coming. The mountains were 
now infested with the dread Albanian irregularsColeman had 
thought in his daylight tramp that he had appreciated the noble 
distancesbut he found that he knew nothing of their nobility 
until he tried this night stumbling. And the hoofs of the little 
horse made on the hard road more noise than could be made by 
men beating with hammers upon brazen cylinders. The 
correspondent glanced continually up at the crags. From the 
other side he could sometimes hear the metallic clink of water 
deep down in a glen. For the first time in his life he seriously 
opened the flap of his holster and let his fingers remain on the 
handle of his revolver. From just in front of 
him he could hear the chattering of the dragoman's teeth which 
no attempt at more coolness could seem to prevent. In the 
meantime the casual manner of the little grey horse struck 
Coleman with maddening vividness. If the blank darkness was 
simply filled with ferocious Albaniansthe horse did not care a 
button; he leisurely put his feet down with a resounding ring. 
Coleman whispered hastily to the dragoman. " If they rush us
jump down the bankno matter how deep it is. That's our only 
chance. And try to keep together." 
All they saw of the universe wasin front of them
a place faintly luminous near their feetbut fading in 
six yards to the darkness of a dungeon. This represented 
the bright white road of the day time. It had 
no end. Coleman had thought that he could tell 
from the very feel of the air some of the landmarks of 
his daytime journeybut he had now no sense of 
location at all. He would not have denied that he 
was squirming on his belly like a worm through black 
mud. 
They went on and on. Visions of his past were sweeping 
through Coleman's mind precisely as they are said to sweep 
through the mind of a drowning person. But he had no regret 
for any bad deeds; he regretted merely distant hours of peace 
and protection. He was no longer a hero going to rescue his 
love. He was a slave making a gasping attempt to escape 
from the most incredible tyranny of circumstances. He half 
vowed to himself that if the God whom he had in no wise 
heededwould permit him to crawl out of this slavery he would 
never again venture a yard toward a danger any greater than 
may be incurred from the police of a most proper metropolis. If 
his juvenile and uplifting thoughts of other days had 
reproached him he would simply have repeated and repeated: 
Adventure be damned.
It became known to them that the horse had to be led. The 
debased creature was asserting its right to do as it had been 
trainedto follow its customs; it was asserting this right during 
a situation which required conduct superior to all training and 
custom. It was so grossly conventional that Coleman would 
have understood that demoniac form of anger which sometimes 
leads men to jab knives into warm bodies. Coleman from 
cowardice tried to induce the dragoman to go ahead leading the 
horseand the dragoman from cowardice tried to induce 
Coleman to go ahead leading the horse. Coleman of course 
had to succumb. The dragoman was only good to walk behind 
and tearfully whisper maledictions as he prodded the flanks of 
their tranquil beast. 
In the absolute black of the frequent forestsColeman could 
not see his feet and he often felt like a man walking forward to 
fall at any moment down a thousand yards of chasm. He heard 
whispers; he saw skulking figuresand these frights turned out to be the 
voice of a little trickle of water or the effects of wind among the 
leavesbut they were replaced by the same terrors in slightly 
different forms. 
Then the poignant thing interpolated. A volley crashed 
ahead of them some half of a mile away and another volley 
answered from a still nearer point. Swishing noises which the 
correspondent had heard in the air he now know to have been 
from the passing of bullets. He and the dragoman came stock 
still. They heard three other volleys sounding with the abrupt 
clamour of a hail of little stones upon a hollow surface. Coleman 
and the dragoman came close together and looked into the 
whites of each other's eyes. The ghastly horse at that moment 
stretched down his neck and began placidly to pluck the grass 
at the roadside. The two men were equally blank with fear and 
each seemed to seek in the other some newly rampant manhood 
upon which he could lean at this time. Behind them were the 
Turks. In front of them was a fight in the darkness. In front it 
was mathematic to suppose in fact were also the Turks. They 
were barred; enclosed; cut off. The end was come. 
Even at that moment they heard from behind them the sound 
of slowstealthy footsteps. They both wheeled instantly
choking with this additional terror. Coleman saw the dragoman 
move swiftly to the side of the roadready to jump into 
whatever abyss happened to be there. Coleman still gripped the halter 
as if it were in truth a straw. The stealthy footsteps 
were much nearer. Then it was that an insanity came 
upon him as if fear had flamed up within him until it 
gave him all the magnificent desperation of a madman. 
He jerked the grey horse broadside to the approaching 
mysteryand grabbing out his revolver 
aimed it from the top of his improvised bulwark. He 
hailed the darkness. 
Halt. Who's there?He had expected his voice to sound like 
a groanbut instead it happened to sound clearstern
commandinglike the voice of a young sentry at an 
encampment of volunteers. He did not seem to have any 
privilege of selection as to the words. They were born of 
themselves. 
He waited thenblanched and hopelessfor death to wing 
out of the darkness and strike him down. He heard a voice. The 
voice said: " Do you speak English? " For one or two seconds 
he could not even understand Englishand then the great fact 
swelled up and within him. This voice with all its new quavers 
was still undoubtedly the voice of Prof. Harrison B.Wainwright 
of Washurst College 
CHAPTER XII. 
A CHANGE flashed over Coleman as if it had come from an 
electric storage. He had known the professor longbut he had 
never before heard a quaver in his voiceand it was this little 
quaver that seemed to impel him to supreme disregard of the 
dangers which he looked upon as being the final dangers. His 
own voice had not quavered. 
When he spokehe spoke in a low toneit was the voice of 
the master of the situation. He could hear his dupes fluttering 
there in the darkness. " Yes he said, I speak English. There 
is some danger. Stay where you are and make no noise." He 
was as cool as an iced drink. To be sure the circumstances had 
in no wise changed as to his personal dangerbut beyond the 
important fact that there were now others to endure it with him
he seemed able to forget it in a strangeunauthorized sense of 
victory. It came from the professor's quavers. 
Meanwhile he had forgotten the dragomanbut he recalled 
him in time to bid him wait. Thenas well concealed as a monk 
hiding in his cowlhe tip-toed back into a group of people who 
knew him intimately. 
He discerned two women mounted on little horses and about 
them were dim men. He could hear them breathing hard. " It is 
all right" he began smoothly. "You only need to be very careful---" 
Suddenly out of the blackness projected a half 
phosphorescent face. It was the face of the little professor. He 
stammered. " We-we-do you really speak English? " Coleman in 
his feeling of superb triumph could almost have laughed. His 
nerves were as steady as hempbut he was in haste and his 
haste allowed him to administer rebuke to his old professor. 
 Didn't you hear me ? he hissed through his tightening lips. 
 They are fighting just ahead of us on the road and if you want 
to save yourselves don't waste time.
Another face loomed faintly like a mask painted in dark grey. 
It belonged to Cokeand it was a mask figured in profound 
stupefaction. The lips opened and tensely breathed out the 
name: " Coleman." Instantly the correspondent felt about him 
that kind of a tumult which tries to suppress itself. He knew that 
it was the most theatric moment of his life. He glanced quickly 
toward the two figures on horseback. He believed that one was 
making foolish gesticulation while the other sat rigid and silent. 
This latter one he knew to be Marjory. He was content that she 
did not move. Only a woman who was glad he had come but did 
not care for him would have moved. This applied directly to 
what he thought he knew of Marjory's nature. 
There was confusion among the studentsbut Coleman 
suppressed it as in such situation might a centurion. " S-s-steady! " 
He seized the arm of the professor and drew him 
forcibly close. " The condition is this he whispered rapidly. 
We are in a fix with this fight on up the road. I was sent after 
youbut I can't get you into the Greek lines to-night. Mrs.Wainwright 
and Marjory must dismount and I and 
my man will take the horses on and hide them. All 
the rest of you must go up about a hundred feet into 
the woods and hide. When I come backI'll hail you 
and you answer low." The professor was like pulp in 
his grasp. He choked out the word "Coleman" in 
agony and wonderbut he obeyed with a palpable 
gratitude. Coleman sprang to the side of the shadowy 
figure of Marjory. " Come he said authoritatively. 
She laid in his palm a little icy cold hand and dropped 
from her horse. He had an impulse to cling to the 
small fingers, but he loosened them immediately, imparting 
to his manner, as well as the darkness permitted 
him, a kind of casual politeness as if he were 
too intent upon the business in hand. He bunched 
the crowd and pushed them into the wood. Then he 
and the dragoman took the horses a hundred yards 
onward and tethered them. No one would care if 
they were stolen; the great point was to get them 
where their noise would have no power of revealing the whole 
party. There had been no further firing. 
After he had tied the little grey horse to a tree he 
unroped his luggage and carried the most of it back 
to the point where the others had left the road. He 
called out cautiously and received a sibilant answer. 
He and the dragoman bunted among the trees until 
they came to where a forlorn company was seated 
awaiting them lifting their faces like frogs out of a 
pond. His first question did not give them any 
assurance. He said at once: Are any of you 
armed?" Unanimously they lowly breathed: "No." 
He searched them out one by one and finally sank 
down by the professor. He kept sort of a hypnotic 
handcuff upon the dragomanbecause he foresaw that 
this man was really going to be the key to the best 
means of escape. To a large neutral party wandering 
between hostile lines there was technically no danger
but actually there was a great deal. Both armies had 
too many irregularslawless hillsmen come out to 
fight in their own wayand if they were encountered 
in the dead of night on such hazardous ground the 
Greek hillsmen with their white cross on a blue field 
would be precisely as dangerous as the blood-hungry 
Albanians. Coleman knew that the rational way was 
to reach the Greek linesand he had no intention of 
reaching the Greek lines without a tongueand the 
only tongue was in the mouth of the dragoman. He 
was correct in thinking that the professor's deep knowledge of 
the ancient language would give him small clue to the speech 
of the modern Greek. 
As he settled himself by the professor the band of students
eight in number pushed their faces close. 
He did not see any reason for speaking. There were thirty 
seconds of deep silence in which he felt that all were bending to 
hearken to his words of counsel The professor huskily broke 
the stillness. Well * * * what are we to do now? " 
Coleman was decisiveindeed absolute. "We'll stay here until 
daylight unless you care to get shot." 
 All right,answered the professor. He turned and made a 
useless remark to his flock. " Stay here." 
Coleman asked civilly Have you had anything to eat? 
Have you got anything to wrap around you ? 
 We have absolutely nothing,answered the professor. " 
Our servants ran away and * * and then we left everything 
behind us * * and I've never been in such a position in my life." 
Coleman moved softly in the darkness and unbuckled some 
of his traps. On his knee he broke the hard cakes of bread and 
with his fingers he broke the little tablets of chocolate. These 
he distributed to his people. And at this time he felt fully the 
appreciation of the conduct of the eight American college 
students They had not yet said a word-with the 
exception of the bewildered exclamation from Coke. They all 
knew him well. In any circumstance of life which as far as he 
truly believedthey had yet encounteredthey would have 
been privileged to accost him in every form of their remarkable 
vocabulary. They were as new to this game aswould have 
been eight newly-caught Apache Indians if such were set to 
run the elevators in the Tract Society Building. He could see 
their eyes gazing at him anxiously and he could hear their deepdrawn 
breaths. But they said no word. He knew that they were 
looking upon him as their leaderalmost as their saviourand he 
knew also that they were going to follow him without a murmur 
in the conviction that he knew ten-fold more than they knew. It 
occurred to him that his position was ludicrously falsebut
anyhowhe was glad. Surely it would be a very easy thing to 
lead them to safety in the morning and he foresaw the credit 
which would come to him. He concluded that it was beneath his 
dignity as preserver to vouchsafe them many words. His 
business was to be the coldmasterfulenigmatic man. It might 
be said that these reflections were only half-thoughts in his 
mind. Meanwhile a section of his intellect was flying hither and 
thitherspeculating upon the Circassian cavalry and the 
Albanian guerillas and even the Greek outposts. 
He unbuckled his blanket roll and taking one blanket placed 
it about the shoulders of the shadow which was 
Mrs.Wainwright. The shadow protested incoherently. hut he 
muttered "Oh that's all right." Then he took his other blanket 
and went to the shadow which was 
Marjory. It was something like putting a wrap about the 
shoulders of a statue. He was base enough to linger in the 
hopes that he could detect some slight trembling but as far as 
lie knew she was of stone. His macintosh he folded around the 
body of the professor amid quite senile protestso senile that 
the professor seemed suddenly proven to him as an oldold mana fact 
which had never occurred to Washurst or her children. Then he went 
to the dragoman and pre-empted half of his blanketsThe 
dragoman grunted but Coleman It would not do to have this dragoman 
develop a luxurious temperament when eight American college 
students werewithout speechshivering in the cold night. 
Coleman really begun to ruminate upon his glorybut he 
found that he could not do this well without Smokingso he 
crept away some distance from this firelessencampmentand 
bending his face to the ground at the foot of a tree he struck a 
match and lit a cigar. His retun to the others would have been 
somewhat in the manner of coolness as displayed on the stage 
if he had not been prevented by the necessity of making no 
noise. He saw regarding him as before the dimly visible eyes of 
the eight students and Marjory and her father and mother. 
Then he whispered the conventional words. " Go to sleep if you can. 
You'll need your strength in the morning. I and this man here will keep 
watch." Three of the college students of course crawled up to 
him and each said: " I'll keep watchold man." 
 No. We'll keep watch. You people try to sleep.
He deemed that it might be better to yield the dragoman his 
blanketand So he got up and leaned against a treeholding his 
hand to cover the brilliant point of his cigar. He knew perfectly 
well that none of them could sleep. But he stood there 
somewhat like a sentry without the attitudebut with all the 
effect of responsibility. 
He had no doubt but what escape to civilisation would be 
easybut anyhow his heroism should be preserved. He was the 
rescuer. His thoughts of Marjory were somewhat in a puzzle. 
The meeting had placed him in such a position that he had 
expected a lot of condescension on his own part. Instead she 
had exhibited about as much recognition of him as would a 
stone fountain on his grandfather's place in Connecticut. This 
in his opinion was not the way to greet the knight who had 
come to the rescue of his lady. He had not expected it so to 
happen. In fact from Athens to this place he had engaged 
himself with imagery of possible meetings. He was vexed
certainlybutfar beyond thathe knew a deeper adminiration 
for this girl. To him she represented the sexand so the 
sex as embodied in her seemed a mystery to be feared. He 
wondered if safety came on the morrow he would not surrender 
to this feminine invulnerability. She had not done anything that 
he had expected of her and so inasmuch as he loved her he 
loved her more. It was bewitching. He half considered himself a 
fool. But at any rate he thought resentfully she should be 
thankful to him for having rendered her a great service. 
Howeverwhen he came to consider this proposition he knew 
that on a basis of absolute manly endeavour he had rendered 
her little or no service. 
The night was long. 
CHAPTER XIII. 
COLEMAN suddenly found himself looking upon his pallid 
dragoman. He saw that he had been asleep crouched at the foot 
of the tree. Without any exchange of speech at all he knew 
there had been alarming noises. Then shots sounded from 
nearby. Some were from rifles aimed in that direction and some 
were from rifles opposed to them. This was distinguishable to 
the experienced manbut all that Coleman knew was that the 
conditions of danger were now triplicated. Unconsciously he 
stretched his hands in supplication over his charges. "Don't 
move! Don't move! And keep close to the ground!" All heeded 
him but Marjory. She still sat straight. He himself was on his 
feetbut he now knew the sound of bulletsand he knew that 
no bullets had spun through the trees. He could not see her 
distinctlybut it was known to him in some way that she was 
mutinous. He leaned toward her and spoke as harshly as 
possible. "Marjoryget down! " She wavered for a moment as if 
resolved to defy him. As he turned again to peer in the direction 
of the firing it went through his mind that she must love him 
very much indeed. He was assured of it. 
It must have been some small outpour between nervous 
pickets and eager hillsmenfor it ended in a moment. The party 
waited in abasement for what seemed to them a timeand the 
blue dawn beganto laggardly shift the night as they waited. 
The dawn itself seemed prodigiously long in arriving at 
anything like discernible landscape. When this was 
consummatedColemanin somewhat the manner of the father 
of a churchdealt bits of chocolate out to the others. He had 
already taken the precaution to confer with the dragomanso he 
said : " Wellcome ahead. We'll make a try for it." They arose at 
his bidding and followed him to the road. It was the same broad
white roadonly that the white was in the dawning something 
like the grey of a veil. It took some courage to venture upon this 
thoroughfarebut Coleman stepped out-after looking quickly in 
both directions. The party tramped to where the horses had 
been leftand there they were found without change of a rope. 
Coleman rejoiced to see that his dragoman now followed him in 
the way of a good lieutenant. They both dashed in among the 
trees and had the horses out into the road in a twinkle. When 
Coleman turned to direct that utterly subservientgroup he 
knew that his face was drawn from hardship and anxietybut he 
saw everywhere the same style of face with the exception of the 
face of Marjorywho looked simply of lovely marble. He 
noted with a curious satisfactionas if the thing was a tribute to 
himselfthat his macintosh was over the professor's shoulder
that Marjory and her mother were each carrying a blanketand 
thatthe corps of students had dutifully brought all the traps 
which his dragoman had forgotten. It was grand. 
He addressed them to say: " Nowapproaching outposts is 
very dangerous business at this time in the morning. So my 
manwho can talk both Greek and Turkishwill go ahead forty 
yardsand I will follow somewhere between him and you. Try 
not to crowd forward." 
He directed the ladies upon their horses and placed the 
professor upon the little grey nag. Then they took up their line 
of march. The dragoman had looked somewhat dubiously upon 
this plan of having him go forty yards in advancebut he had 
the utmost confidence in this new Colemanwhom yesterday he 
had not known. Besideshe himself was a very gallant man 
indeedand it befitted him to take the post of danger before the 
eyes of all these foreigners. In his new position he was as 
proud and unreasonable as a rooster. He was continually 
turning his head to scowl back at themwhen only the clank of 
hoofs was sounding. An impenetrable mist lay on the valley 
and the hill-tops were shrouded. As for the peoplethey were 
like mice. Coleman paid no attention to the Wainwright party
but walked steadily along near the dragoman. 
Perhaps the whole thing was a trifle absurdbut to a great 
percentageof the party it was terrible. For instancethose 
eight boysfresh from a schoolcould in no wise gauge the 
dimensions. And if this was true of the studentsit was more 
distinctly true of Marjory and her mother. As for the professor
he seemed Weighted to the earth by his love and his 
responsibility. 
Suddenly the dragoman wheeled and made demoniac signs. 
Coleman half-turned to survey the main bodyand then paid 
his attention swiftly to the front. The white road sped to the top 
of a hill where it seemed to make a rotund swing into oblivion. 
The top of the curve was framed in foliageand therein was a 
horseman. He had his carbine slanted on his thighand his 
bridle-reins taut. Upon sight of them he immediately wheeled 
and galloped down the other slope and vanished. 
The dragoman was throwing wild gestures into the air. As 
Coleman looked back at the Wainwright party he saw plainly 
that to an ordinary eye they might easily appear as a strong 
advance of troops. The peculiar light would emphasize such 
theory. The dragoman ran to him jubilantlybut he contained 
now a form of intelligence which caused him to whisper; " That 
was one Greek. That was one Greek-what do you call--sentree? " 
Coleman addressed the others. He said: "It's all right. Come 
ahead. That was a Greek picket. There is only one trouble now
and that is to approach them easy-do you see-easy." 
His obedient charges came forward at his word. When they 
arrived at the top of this rise they saw nothing. Coleman was 
very uncertain. He was not sure that this picket had not carried 
with him a general alarmand in that case there would soon 
occur a certain amount of shooting. Howeveras far as he 
understood the businessthere was no way but forward. 
Inasmuch as he did not indicate to the Wainwright party that he 
wished them to do differentlythey followed on doggedly after 
him and the dragoman. He knew now that the dragoman's heart 
had for the tenth time turned to dog-biscuitso he kept abreast 
of him. And soon together they walked into a cavalry outpost
commanded by no less a person than the dashing young 
captainwho came laughing out to meet them. 
Suddenly losing all colour of warthe condition was now 
such as might occur in a drawing room. Coleman felt the 
importance of establishing highly conventional relations 
between the captain and the Wainwright party. To compass 
this he first seized his dragomanand the dragoman
enlightened immediatelyspun a series of lies which must have 
led the captain to believe that the entire heart of the American 
republic had been taken out of that western continent and 
transported to Greece. Coleman was proud of the captainThe 
latter immediately went and bowed in the manner of the French 
school and asked everybody to have a cup of coffeealthough 
acceptation would have proved his ruin and disgrace. Coleman 
refused in the name of courtesy. He called his party forward
and now they proceeded merely as one crowd. Marjory had 
dismounted in the meantime. 
The moment was come. Coleman felt it. The first rush was 
from the students. Immediately he was buried in a thrashing 
mob of them. "Good boy! Good boy! Great man! Ohisn't he a 
peach? How did he do it? He came in strong at the finish ! Good 
boyColeman!" Through this mist of glowing youthful 
congratulatioin he saw the professor standing at the outskirts 
with direct formal thanks already moving on his lipswhile near 
him his wife wept joyfully. Marjory was evidently enduring 
some inscrutable emotion. 
After allit did penetrate his mind that it was indecent to 
accept all this wild gratitudebut there was built within him no 
intention of positively declaring himself lacking in all creditor 
at leastlacking in all credit in the way their praises defined it. 
In truth he had assisted thembut he had been at the time 
largely engaged in assisting himselfand their coming had been 
more of a boon to his loneliness than an addition to his care. 
Howeverhe soon had no difficulty in 
making his conscience appropriate every line in these hymns 
sung in his honour. The studentscuriously wise of men
thought his conduct quite perfect. " Ohsaycome off ! " he 
protested. " WhyI didn't do anything. You fellows are crazy. 
You would have gotten in all right by yourselves. Don't act like 
asses-" 
As soon as the professor had opportunity he came to 
Coleman. He was a changed little manand his extraordinary 
bewilderment showed in his face. It was the disillusion and 
amazement of a stubborn mind that had gone implacably in its 
one direction and found in the end that the direction was all 
wrongand that really a certain mental machine had not been 
infallible. Coleman remembered what the American minister in 
Athens had described of his protests against the starting of the 
professor's party on this journeyand of the complete refusal of 
the professor to recognise any value in the advice. And here 
now was the consequent defeat. It was mirrored in the 
professor's astonished eyes. Coleman went directly to his dazed 
old teacher. " Wellyou're out of it nowprofessor he said 
warmly. I congratulate you on your escapesir." The 
professor looked at himhelpless to express himselfbut the 
correspondent was at that time suddenly enveloped in the 
hysterical gratitude of Mrs. Wainwrightwho hurled herself 
upon him with extravagant manifestations. Coleman played his 
part with skill. To both the professor and Mrs. Wainwright his 
manner was a combination of modestly filial affection and a 
pretentious disavowal of his having done anything at all. It 
seemed to charm everybody but Marjory. It irritated him to see 
that she was apparently incapable of acknowledging that he was a 
grand man. 
He was actually compelled to go to her and offer 
congratulations upon her escapeas he had congratulated the 
professor. 
If his manner to her parents had been filialhis manner to her 
was parental. " WellMarjory he said kindly, you have been 
in considerable danger. I suppose you're glad to be through 
with it." She at that time made no replybut by her casual turn 
he knew that he was expected to walk along by her side. The 
others knew ittooand the rest of the party left them free to 
walk side by side in the rear. 
 This is a beautiful country here-abouts if one gets a good 
chance to see it,he remarked. Then he added: "But I suppose 
you had a view of it when you were going out to Nikopolis? " 
She answered in muffled tones. "Yeswe thought it very 
beautiful." 
Did you note those streams from the mountains " That 
seemed to me the purest water I'd ever seenbut I bet it would 
make one ill to drink it. There isyou knowa prominent 
German chemist who has almost proven 
that really pure water is practical poison to the human 
stomach." 
Yes ? she said. 
There was a period of silenceduring which he was perfectly 
comfortable because he knew that she was ill at ease. If the 
silence was awkwardshe was suffering from it. As for himself
he had no inclination to break it. His position wasas far as the 
entire Wainwright party was concerneda place where he could 
afford to wait. She turned to him at last. "Of courseI know 
how much you have done for usand I want you to feel that we 
all appreciate it deeply-deeply." There was discernible to the ear 
a certain note of desperation. 
 Oh, not at all,he said generously. " Not at all. I didn't do 
anything. It was quite an accident. Don't let that trouble you 
for a moment." 
Well, of course you would say that,she said more 
steadily. " But I-we-we know how good and how-brave it was 
in you to come for usand I--we must never forget it." 
As a matter of fact replied Coleman, with an appearance 
of ingenuous candor, I was sent out here by the Eclipse to 
find you peopleand of course I worked rather hard to reach 
youbut the final meeting was purely accidental and does not 
redound to my credit in the least." 
As he had anticipatedMarjory shot him a little glance of 
disbelief. " Of course you would say that she repeated with 
gloomy but flattering conviction. 
Ohif I had been a great hero he said smiling, no doubt 
I would have kept up this same manner which now sets so well 
upon mebut I am telling you the truth when I say that I had no 
part in your rescue at all." 
She became slightly indignant. " Ohif you care to tell us 
constantly that you were of no service to usI don't see what 
we can do but continue to declare that you were." 
Suddenly he felt vulgar. He spoke to her this time with real 
meaning. " I beg of 'you never to mention it again. That will be 
the best way." 
But to this she would not accede. "Nowe will often want to 
speak of it." 
He replied "How do you like Greece? Don't you think that 
some of these ruins are rather out of shape in the popular 
mind? Nowfor my partI would rather look at a good strong 
finish at a horserace than to see ten thousand Parthenons in a 
bunch." 
She was immediately in the position of defending him from 
himself. "You would rather see no such thing. You shouldn't 
talk in that utterly trivial way. I like the Parthenonof course
but I can't think of it now because my head. is too full of my 
escape from where I was so-so frightened." 
Coleman grinned. " Were you really frightened?" 
 Naturally,she answered. " I suppose I was more 
frightened for mother and fatherbut I was frightened enough 
for myself. It was not-not a nice thing." 
No, it wasn't,said Coleman. "I could hardly believe my 
senseswhen the minister at Athens told me thatyou all had 
ventured into such a trapand there is no doubt but what you 
can be glad that you are well out of it." 
She seemed to have some struggle with herself and then 
she deliberately said: "Thanks to you." 
Coleman embarked on what he intended to make a series of 
high-minded protests. " Not at all-" but at that moment the 
dragoman whirled back from the van-guard with a great 
collection of the difficulties which had been gathering upon 
him. Coleman was obliged to resign Marjory and again take up 
the active leadership. He disposed of the dragoman's 
difficulties mainly by declaring that they were not difficulties at 
all. He had learned that this was the way to deal with dragomen. 
The fog had already lifted from the valley andas they 
passed along the wooded mountain-side the fragrance of 
leaves and earth came to them. Aheadalong the hooded road
they could see the blue clad figures of Greek infantrymen. 
Finally they passed an encampment of a battalion whose line 
was at a right angle to the highway. A hundred yards in advance was the 
bridge across the Louros river. And there a battery of artillery 
was encamped. The dragoman became involved in all sorts of 
discussions with other Greeksbut Coleman stuck to his elbow 
and stifled all aimless oration. The Wainwright party waited for 
them in the rear in an observant but patient group. 
Across a plainthe hills directly behind Arta loomed up 
showing the straight yellow scar of a modern entrenchment. To 
the north of Arta were some grey mountains with a dimly 
marked road winding to the summit. On one side of this road 
were two shadows. It took a moment for the eye to find these 
shadowsbut when this was accomplished it was plain that 
they were men. The captain of the battery explained to the 
dragoman that he did not know that they were not also Turks. 
In which case the road to Arta was a dangerous path. It was no 
good news to Coleman. He waited a moment in order to gain 
composure and then walked back to the Wainwright party. 
They must have known at once from his peculiar gravity that all 
was not well. Five of the students and the professor 
immediately asked: "What is it?" 
He had at first some old-fashioned idea of concealing the ill 
tidings from the ladiesbut he perceived what flagrant nonsense 
this would be in circumstances in which all were fairly likely to 
incur equal dangersand at any rate he did not see his way clear 
to allow their imagination to run riot over a situation which might not 
turn out to be too bad. He said slowly: " You see those 
mountains over there? Welltroops have been seen there and 
the captain of this battery thinks they are Turks. If they are 
Turks the road to Arta is distinctly-er-unsafe." 
This new blow first affected the Wainwright party as being 
too much to endure. " They thought they had gone through 
enough. This was a general sentiment. Afterward the emotion 
took colour according to the individual character. One student 
laughed and said: " WellI see our finish." 
Another student piped out: " How do they know they are 
Turks? What makes them think they are Turks " 
Another student expressed himself with a sigh. "This is a 
long way from the Bowery." 
The professor said nothing but looked annihilated; Mrs. 
Wainwright wept profoundly; Marjory looked expectantly 
toward Coleman. 
As for the correspondent he was adamantine and reliable 
and sternfor he had not the slightest idea that those men on 
the distant hill were Turks at all. 
CHAPTER XIV.
OH,said a student this game ought to quit. I feel like
thirty cents. We didn't come out here to be pursued about the 
country by these Turks. Why don't they stop it ?
Coleman was remarking: "Reallythe only sensible thing to 
do now is to have breakfast. There is no use in worrying 
ourselves silly over this thing until we've got to." 
They spread the blankets on the ground and sat about a 
feast of breadwater cress and tinned beef. Coleman was the 
real hostbut he contrived to make the professor appear as that 
honourable person. They atecasting their eyes from time to 
time at the distant mountain with its two shadows. People 
began to fly down the road from Janninapeasants hurriedly 
driving little flockswomen and children on donkeys and little 
horses which they clubbed unceasingly. One man rode at a 
gallopshrieking and flailing his arms in the air. They were all 
Christian peasants of Turkeybut they were in flight now 
because they did not wish to be at home if the Turk was going 
to return and reap revenge for his mortification. The 
Wainwright party looked at Coleman in abrupt questioning. 
Oh, it's all right,he saideasily. "They are always taking on 
that way." 
Suddenly the dragoman gave a shout and dashed up the 
road to the scene of a melee where a little ratfaced groom was 
vociferously defending three horses from some Greek officers
who as vociferously were stating their right to requisition them. 
Coleman ran after his dragoman. There was a sickening pow-wow
but in the end Colemanstraight and easy in the saddle
came cantering back on a superb open-mouthed snorting bay 
horse. He did not mind if the half-wild animal plunged crazily. It 
was part of his role. "They were trying to steal my horses he 
explained. He leaped to the ground, and holding the horse by 
the bridle, he addressed his admiring companions. The groomthe 
man who has charge of the horses -says that he thinks that 
the people on the mountain-side are Turksbut I don't see how 
that is possible. You see-" he pointed wisely-" that road leads 
directly south to Artaand it is hardly possible that the Greek 
army would come over here and leave that approach to Arta 
utterly unguarded. It would be too foolish. They must have left 
some men to cover itand that is certainly what those troops 
are. If you are all ready and willingI don't see anything to do 
but make a goodstout-hearted dash for Arta. It would be no 
more dangerous than to sit here." 
The professor was at last able to make his formal 
speech. " Mr. Coleman he said distinctly, we place ourselves 
entirely in your hands." It was some. how pitiful. This man who
for years and years had reigned in a little college town almost 
as a monarchpassing judgment with the air of one who words 
the lawdealing criticism upon the universe as one to whom all 
things are plainpublicly disdaining defeat as one to whom all 
things are easy-this man was now veritably appealing to 
Coleman to save his wifehis daughter and himselfand really 
declared himself de. pendent for safety upon the ingenuity and 
courage of the correspondent. 
The attitude of the students was utterly indifferent. They did 
not consider themselves helpless at all. they were evidently 
quite ready to withstand anything but they looked frankly up to 
Coleman as their intelligent leader. If they suffered anytheir 
only expression of it was in the simple grim slang of their 
period. 
 I wish I was at Coney Island.
 This is not so bad as trigonometry, but it's worse than 
playing billiards for the beers.
And Coke said privately to Coleman: " Saywhat in hell are 
these two damn peoples fighting foranyhow? " 
When he saw that all opinions were in favour of following 
him loyallyColeman was impelled to feel a responsibility. He 
was now no errant rescuerbut a properly elected leader 
of fellow beings in distress. While one 
of the students held his horsehe took the dragoman for 
another consultation with the captain of the battery. The officer 
was sitting on a large stonewith his eyes fixed into his field 
glasses. When again questioned he could give no satisfaction 
as to the identity of the troops on the distant mountain. He 
merely shrugged his shoulders and said that if they were Greeks 
it was very goodbut if they were Turks it was very bad. He 
seemed more occupied in trying to impress the correspondent 
that it was a matter of soldierly indifference to himself. 
Colemanafter loathing him sufficiently in silencereturned to 
the others and said: " Wellwe'll chance it." 
They looked to him to arrange the caravan. Speaking to the 
men of the party he said: " Of courseany one of you is 
welcome to my horse if you can ride itbut-if you're not too 
tired-I think I had myself better rideso that I can go ahead at 
times." 
His manner was so fine as he said this that the students 
seemed fairly to worship him. Of course it had been most 
improbable that any of them could have ridden that volcanic 
animal even if one of them had tried it. 
He saw Mrs. Wainwright and Marjory upon the backs of 
their two little nativesand hoisted the professor into the 
saddle of the groom's horseleaving instructions with the 
servant to lead the animal always and carefully. He and the dragoman 
then mounted at the head of the processionand amid curious 
questionings from the soldiery they crossed the bridge and 
started on the trail to Arta. The rear was brought up by the 
little grey horse with the luggageled by one student and flogged 
by another. 
Colemanchecking with difficulty the battling disposition of 
his horsewas very uneasy in his mind because the last words 
of the captain of the battery had made him feel that perhaps on 
this ride he would be placed in a position where only the best 
courage would countand he did not see his way clear to 
feeling very confident about his conduct in such a case. 
Looking back upon the caravanhe saw it as a most unwieldy 
thingnot even capable of running away. He hurried it with 
suddensharp contemptuous phrases. 
On the. march there incidentally flashed upon him a new 
truth. More than half of that student band were deeply in love 
with Marjory. Of coursewhen he had been distant from her he 
had had an eternal jealous reflection to that effect. It was natural 
that he should have thought of the intimate camping relations 
between Marjory and these young students with a great deal of 
bitternessgrinding his teeth when picturing their opportunities 
to make Marjory fall in love with some one of them. He had 
raged particularly about Cokewhose father had millions of 
dollars. But he had forgotten all these jealousies in the general 
splendour of his exploits. Nowwhen he saw the truthit 
seemed. to bring him back to his common life and he saw himself suddenly
as not being frantically superior in any way to those other 
young men. The more closely he looked at this
last factthe more convinced he was of its truth. He seemed to
see that he had been impropererly elated over 
his services to the Wainwrightsand thatin
the endthe girl might fancy a man because the man had done
her no service at all. He saw his proud position lower itself to
be a pawn in the game. Looking back over the studentshe
wondered which one Marjory might love. This hideous
Nikopolis had given eight men chance to win her. His scorn and
his malice quite centered upon Cokefor he could never
forget that the man's father had millions of dollars. The
unfortunate Coke chose that moment to address him
querulously : "Look hereColemancan't you tell us how far it is
to Arta ? "
Coke,said Coleman I don't suppose you take me for a
tourist agency, but if you can only try to distinguish between
me and a map with the scale of miles printed in the lower left-
hand corner, you will not contribute so much to the sufferings
of the party which you now adorn.
The students within hearing guffawed and Coke retiredin
confusion.
The march was not rapid. Coleman almost wore
out his arms holding in check his impetuous horse. Often the
caravan floundered through mudwhile at the same time a hot
yellow dust came from the north.
They were perhaps half way to Arta when Coleman decided
that a rest and luncheon were the things to be considered. He
halted his troop then in the shade of some great treesand
privately he bade his dragoman prepare the best feast which
could come out of those saddle-bags fresh from Athens. The
result was rather gorgeous in the eyes of the poor wanderers.
First of all there were three knivesthree forksthree spoons
three tin cups and three tin plaieswhich the entire party of
twelve used on a most amiable socialistic principle. There were
crispsalty biscuits and olivesfor which they speared in the
bottle. There was potted turkeyand potted hamand potted
tongueall tasting precisely alike. There were sardines and the
ordinary tinned beefdisguised sometimes with onionscarrots
and potatoes. Out of the saddle-bags came pepper and salt and
even mustard. The dragoman made coffee over a little fire of
sticks that blazed with a white light. The whole thing was
prodigalbut any philanthropist would have approved of it if he
could have seen the way in which the eight students laid into
the spread. When there came a polite remonstrance-notably from
Mrs. Wainwright-Coleman merely pointed to a large bundle
strapped back of the groom's saddle. During the coffee he was
considering how best to get the students one by one out of the sight of
the Wainwrights where he could give them good drinks of
whisky.
There was an agitation on the road toward Arta. Some people
were coming on horses. He paid small heed until he heard a
thump of pausing hoofs near himand a musical voice say: "Rufus! "
He looked up quicklyand then all present saw his eyes
really bulge. There on a fat and glossy horse sat Nora Black
dressed in probably one of the most correct riding habits which 
had ever been seen in the East. She was smiling a radiant smile
which held the eight students simpty spell-bound. They would 
have recognised her if it had not been for this apparitional 
coming in the wilds of southeastern Europe. Behind her were 
her people-some servants and an old lady on a very little pony. 
 Well, Rufus? she said. 
Coleman made the mistake of hesitating. For a fraction of a 
moment he had acted as if he were embarrassedand was only 
going to nod and say: " How d'do ?" 
He arose and came forward too late. She was looking at him 
with a menacing glance which meant difficulties for him if he 
was not skilful. Keen as an eagleshe swept her glance over the 
face and figure of Marjory. Without. further introductionthe 
girls seemed to understand that they were enemies. 
Despite his feeling of awkwardnessColeman's mind 
was mainly occupied by pure astonishment. "Nora Black? " he 
saidas if even then he could not believe his senses. " How in 
the world did you get down here ? 
She was not too amiableevidentlyover his receptionand 
she seemed to know perfectly that it was in her power to make 
him feel extremely unpleasant. " Ohit's not so far she 
answered. I don't see where you come in to ask me what I'm 
doing here. What are you doing here? " She lifted her eyes and 
shot the half of a glance at Marjory. Into her last question she 
had interjected a spirit of ownership in which he saw future 
woe. It turned him cowardly. " Whyyou know I was sent up 
here by the paper to rescue the Wainwright partyand I've got 
them. I'm taking them to Arta. But why are you here?" 
 I am here,she saidgiving him the most defiant of 
glances principally to look for you.
Even the horse she rode betrayed an intention of abiding 
upon that spot forever. She had made her communication with 
Coleman appear to the Wainwright party as a sort of tender 
reunion. 
Coleman looked at her with a steely eye. "Norayou can 
certainly be a devil when you choose." 
 Why don't you present me to your friends? Mis,; Nora 
Black, special correspondent of the New York Daylighi, if 
you please. I belong to your opposition. I am your rival, Rufus, 
and I draw a bigger salary-see? Funny looking gang, that. 
Who is the old Johnnie in the white wig?
Er-where you goin'-you can't -blundered Coleman 
miserably "Aw-the army is in retreat and you must go back to-
don't you see?" 
Is it?she agked. After a pause she added coolly: "Then I 
shall go back to Arta with you and your precious Wainwrights." 
CHAPTER XV. 
GIVING Coleman another glance of subtle menace Nora 
repeated: "Why don't you present me to your friends? " 
Coleman had been swiftly searching the whole world for a way 
clear of this unhappinessbut he knew at last that he could only 
die at his guns. " Whycertainly he said quickly, if you 
wish it." He sauntered easily back to the luncheon blanket. 
This is Miss Black of the New York Daylight and she says 
that those people on the mountain are Greeks.The students 
were gaping at himand Marjory and her father sat in the same 
silence. But to the relief of Coleman and to the high edification 
of the studentsMrs. Wainwright cried out: " Whyis she an 
American woman? " And seeing Coleman's nod of assent she 
rustled to her feet and advanced hastily upon the complacent 
horsewoman. " I'm delighted to see you. Who would think of 
seeing an American woman way over here. Have you been here 
long? Are you going on further? Ohwe've had such a dreadful 
time." Coleman remained long enough to hear Nora say: " 
Thank you very muchbut I shan't dismount. I am going to ride 
back to Arta presently." 
Then he heard Mrs. Wainwright cry: " Ohare you indeed ? 
Why wetooare going at once to Arta. We can all go 
together." Coleman fled then to the bosom of the studentswho 
all looked at him with eyes of cynical penetration. He cast a 
glance at Marjory more than fearing a glare which denoted an 
implacable resolution never to forgive this thing. On the 
contrary he had never seen her so content and serene. "You 
have allowed your coffee to get chilled she said 
considerately. Won't you have the man warm you some more?" 
Thanks, no,he answered with gratitude. 
Norachanging her mindhad dismounted and was coming 
with Mrs. Wainwright. That worthy lady had long had a fund of 
information and anecdote the sound of which neither her 
husband nor her daughter would endure for a moment. Of 
course the rascally students were out of the question. Here
thenwas really the first ear amiably and cheerfully openand 
she was talking at what the students called her "thirty knot 
gait." 
Lost everything. Absolutely everything. Neither of us have 
even a brush and comb, or a cake of soap, or enough hairpins 
to hold up our hair. I'm going to take Marjory's away from her 
and let her braid her hair down her back. You can imagine how 
dreadful it is---
From time to time the cool voice of Nora sounded 
without effort through this clamour. " Ohit will be no trouble 
at all. I have more than enough of everything. We can divide 
very nicely." 
Coleman broke somewhat imperiously into this feminine chat. 
Well, we must be moving, you know, and his voice started 
the men into activity. When the traps were all packed again on 
the horse Coleman looked back surprised to see the three 
women engaged in the most friendly discussion. The combined 
parties now made a very respectable squadron. Coleman rode 
off at its head without glancing behind at all. He knew that they 
were following from the soft pounding of the horses hoofs on
the sod and from the mellow hum of human voices.
For a long time he did not think to look upon himself as
anything but a man much injured by circumstances. Among his
friends he could count numbers who had lived long lives
without having this peculiar class of misfortune come to them.
In fact it was so unusual a misfortune that men of the world had
not found it necessary to pass from mind to mind a perfec t
formula for dealing with it. But he soon began to consider
himself an extraordinarily lucky person inasmuch as Nora Black
had come upon him with her saddle bags packed with
inflammable substancesso to speakand there had been as yet
only enough fire to boil coffee for luncheon. He laughed
tenderly when he thought of the innocence of Mrs.
Wainwrightbut his face and back flushed with heat when lie 
thought of the canniness of the eight American college students.
He heard a horse cantering up on his left side and looking he
saw Nora Black. She was beaming with satisfaction and good
nature. " WellRufus she cried flippantly, how goes it with
the gallant rescuer? You've made a hitmy boy. You are the
success of the season."
Coleman reflected upon the probable result of a direct appeal
to Nora. He knew of course that such appeals were usually idle
but he did not consider Nora an ordinary person. His decision
was to venture it. He drew his horse close to hers. " Nora he
said, do you know that you are raising the very devil? "
She lifted her finely penciled eyebrows and looked at him
with the baby-stare. " How ? " she enquired.
 You know well enough,he gritted out wrathfully.
Raising the very devil?she asked. " How do you mean?"
She was palpably interested for his answer. She waited for his
reply for an intervaland then she asked him outright. " Rufus
Coleman do you mean that I am not a respectable woman ? "
In reality he had meant nothing of the kindbut this direct
throttling of a great question stupefied him utterlyfor he saw
now that she' would probably never understand him in the
least and that she would
at any rate always pretend not to understand him and that the
more he said the more harm he manufactured. She studied him
over carefully and then wheeled her horse towards the rear with
some parting remarks. " I suppose you should attend more
strictly to your own affairsRufus. Instead of raising the devil I
am lending hairpins. I have seen you insult peoplebut I have
never seen you insult anyone quite for the whim of the thing.
Go soak your head."
Not considering it advisable to then indulge in such
immersion Coleman rode moodily onward. The hot dust
continued to sting the cheeks of the travellers and in some
places great clouds of dead leaves roared in circles about them.
All of the Wainwright party were utterly fagged. Coleman felt
his skin crackle and his throat seemed to be coated with the
white dust. He worried his dragoman as to the distance to Arta
until the dragoman lied to the point where he always declared
that Arta was only off some hundreds of yards.
At their places in the procession Mrs. Wainwright and
Marjory were animatedly talking to Nora and the old lady on 
the little pony. They had at first suffered great amazement at the 
voluntary presence of the old ladybut she was there really 
because she knew no better. Her colossal ignorance took the 
formmainlyof a most obstreperous patriotismand indeed she 
always acted in a foreign country as if she were the 
special commissioner of the Presidentor perhaps as a 
special commissioner could not act at all. She was 
very aggressiveand when any of the travelling 
arrangements in Europe did not suit her ideas she was 
won't to shrilly exclaim: " Well ! New York is good 
enough for me." Noramorbidly afraid that her expense 
bill to the Daylight would not be large enough
had dragged her bodily off to Greece as her companion
friend and protection. At Arta they had heard of the 
grand success of the Greek army. The Turks had not 
stood for a moment before that gallant and terrible 
advance; no; they had scampered howling with fear 
into the north. Jannina would fall-wellJannina 
would fall as soon as the Greeks arrived. There was 
no doubt of it. The correspondent and her friend
deluded and hurried by the light-hearted confidence 
of the Greeks in Artahad hastened out then on a 
regular tourist's excursion to see Jannina after its 
capture. Nora concealed from her friend the fact 
that the editor of the Daylight particularly wished 
her to see a battle so that she might write an article 
on actual warfare from a woman's point of view. 
With her name as a queen of comic operasuch an 
article from her pen would be a burningsensation. 
Coleman had been the first to point out to Nora that instead 
of going on a picnic to Janninashe had better run back to 
Arta. When the old lady heard that they had not been entirely 
safeshe was furious with Nora. "The idea!" she exclaimed to 
Mrs. Wainwright. "They might have caught us! They might have 
caught us ! " 
 Well,said Mrs. Wainwright. " I verily believe they would 
have caught us if it had not been for Mr. Coleman." 
 Is he the gentleman on the fine horse?
 Yes; that's him. Oh, he has been sim-plee splendid. I 
confess I was a little bit-er-surprised. He was in college under 
my husband. I don't know that we thought very great things of 
him, but if ever a man won golden opinions he has done so from 
us.
 Oh, that must be the Coleman who is such a great friend of 
Nora's.
Yes?said Mrs. Wainwright insidiously. "Is he? I didn't 
know. Of course he knows so many people." Her mind had been 
suddenly illumined by the old lady and she thought 
extravagantly of the arrival of Nora upon the scene. She 
remained all sweetness to the old lady. "Did you know he was 
here? Did you expect to meet him? I seemed such a delightful 
coincidence." In truth she was being subterraneously clever. 
 Oh, no; I don't think so. I didn't hear Nora mention it. Of 
course she would have told me. You know, our coming to 
Greece was such a surprise. Nora had an engagement in 
London at the Folly Theatre in Fly by Night, but the manager 
was insufferable, oh, insufferable. So, of course, Nora wouldn't 
stand it a minute, and then these newspaper people came along and
asked her to go to Greece for them and she accepted. I am sure I
never expected to find us-aw-fleeing from the Turks or I
shouldn't have Come.
 Mrs. Wainwright was gasping. You don't mean that she is--
she is Nora Blackthe actress."
 Of course she is,said the old lady jubilantly.
 Why, how strange,choked Mrs. Wainwrignt. Nothing she
knew of Nora could account for her stupefaction and grief.
What happened glaringly to her was the duplicity of man.
Coleman was a ribald deceiver. He must have known and yet he
had pretended throughout that the meeting was a pure accident
She turned with a nervous impulse to sympathist with her
daughterbut despite the lovely tranquillity of the girl's face
there was something about her which forbade the mother to
meddle. Anyhow Mrs. Wainwright was sorry that she had told
nice things of Coleman's behaviourso she said to the old lady:
 Young men of these times get a false age so quickly. We
have always thought it a great pity, about Mr. Coleman.
Why, how so ? asked the old lady.
Oh, really nothing. Only, to us he seemed rather --er-
prematurely experienced or something of that kind.
The old lady did not catch the meaning of the phrase.
She seemed surprised. WhyI've never seen any full-grown 
person in this world who got experience any too
quick for his own good."
At the tail of the procession there was talk between the
two students who had in charge the little grey horse-one
to lead and one to flog. " Billie said one, it now
becomes necessary to lose this hobby into the hands of
some of the other fellows. Whereby we will gain
opportunity to pay homage to the great Nora. Whyyou
egregious thick-headthis is the chance of a life-time. I'm
damned if I'm going to tow this beast of burden much
further."
 You wouldn't stand a show,said Billie
pessimistically. " Look at Coleman."
 That's all right. Do you mean to say that you prefer to
continue towing pack horses in the presence of this queen
of song and the dance just because you think Coleman can
throw out his chest a little more than you. Not so. Think
of your bright and sparkling youth. There's Coke and
Pete Tounley near Marjory. We'll call 'em.Whereupon
he set up a cry. " Sayyou peoplewe're not getting a
salary for this. Supposin' you try for a time. It'll do you
good." When the two addressed bad halted to await the
arrival of the little grey horsethey took on glum
expressions. " You look like poisoned pups said the
student who led the horse. Too strong for
light work. Grab onto the halternowPeterand tow.
We are going ahead to talk to Nora Black."
 Good time you'll have,answered Peter Tounley.
 Coleman is cuttin' up scandalous. You won't stand a
show.
 What do you think of him ? said Coke. " Seems 
curiousall 'round. Do you suppose he knew she would 
show up? It was nervy to--" 
 Nervy to what? asked Billie. 
Well,said Coke seems to me he is playing both 
ends against the middle. I don't know anything about 
Nora Black, but-
The three other students expressed themselves with 
conviction and in chorus. " Coleman's all right." 
 Well, anyhow,continued Coke I don't see my way 
free to admiring him introducing Nora Black to the 
Wainwrights.
 He didn't,said the othersstill in chorus. 
 Queer game,said Peter Tounley. " He seems to 
know her pretty well." 
 Pretty damn well,said Billie. 
Anyhow he's a brick,said Peter Tounley. "We 
mustn't forget that. LoI begin to feel that our Rufus is a 
fly guy of many different kinds. Any play that he is in 
commands my respect. He won't be hit by a chimney in 
the daytimefor unto him has come much wisdomI 
don't think I'll worry." 
Is he stuck on Nora Black, do you know?asked Billie. 
 One thing is plain,replied Coke. " She has got him 
somehow by the short hair and she intends him to holler 
murder. Anybody can see that." 
 Well, he won't holler murder,said one of them with 
conviction. " I'll bet you he won't. He'll hammer the war-post 
and beat the tom-tom until he dropsbut he won't holler 
murder." 
 Old Mother Wainwright will be in his wool presently,
quoth Peter Tounley musingly I could see it coming in her 
eye. Somebody has given his snap away, or something.
 Aw, he had no snap,said Billie. " Couldn't you see how 
rattled he was? He would have given a lac if dear Nora hadn't 
turned up." 
Of course,the others assented. "He was rattled." 
 Looks queer. And nasty,said Coke. 
 Nora herself had an axe ready for him.
They began to laugh. " If she had had an umbrella she 
would have basted him over the head with it. Ohmy! He was 
green." 
 Nevertheless,said Peter Tounley I refuse to worry over 
our Rufus. When he can't take care of himself the rest of us 
want to hunt cover. He is a fly guy-
Coleman in the meantime had become aware that 
the light of Mrs. Wainwright's countenance was turned from 
him. The party stopped at a welland when he offered her a 
drink from his cup he thought she accepted it with scant 
thanks. Marjory was still graciousalways graciousbut this did 
not reassure himbecause he felt there was much unfathomable 
deception in it. When he turned to seek consolation in the 
manner of the professor he found him as beforestunned with 
surpriseand the only idea he had was to be as tractable as a 
child. 
When he returned to the head of the columnNora again 
cantered forward to join him. " Wellme gay Lochinvar she 
cried, and has your disposition improved? " 
 You are very fresh,he said. 
She laughed loud enough to be heard the full length of the 
caravan. It was a beautiful laughbut full of insolence and 
confidence. He flashed his eyes malignantly upon herbut then 
she only laughed more. She could see that he wished to 
strangle her. " What a disposition ! " she said. " What a 
disposition ! You are not. nearly so nice as your friends. Now
they are charmingbut you-RufusI wish you would get that 
temper mended. Dear Rufusdo it to please me. You know you 
like to please me. Don't you nowdear? " 
He finally laughed. " Confound youNora. I would like to kill 
you." 
But at his laugh she was all sunshine. It was as if she. 
had been trying to taunt him into good humour with her. 
Aw, now, Rufus, don't be angry. I'll be good, Rufus. 
Really, I will. Listen. I want to tell you something. Do you 
know what I did? Well, you know, I never was cut out for 
this business, and, back there, when you told me about the 
Turks being near and all that sort of thing, I was 
frightened almost to death. Really, I was. So, when 
nobody was looking, I sneaked two or three little drinks 
out of my flask. Two or three little drinks-
CHAPTER XVI. 
 GOOD God!said Coleman. "You don't Mean-" 
Nora smiled rosily at him. " OhI'm all right she 
answered. Don't worry about your Aunt Noramy 
precious boy. Not for a minute." 
Coleman was horrified. " But you are not going to-you 
are not going to-" 
Not at all, me son. Not at all,she answered. 
I'm not going to prance. I'm going to be as nice as pie
and just ride quietly along here with dear little Rufus. 
Only * * you know what I can do when I get startedso 
you had better be a very good boy. I might take it into my 
head to say some thingsyou know." 
Bound hand and foot at his stakehe could not even 
chant his defiant torture song. It might precipitate-- in fact
he was sure it would precipitate the grand smash. But to 
the very core of his soulhe for the time hated Nora 
Black. He did not dare to remind her that he would 
revenge himself; he dared only to dream of this revenge
but it fairly made his thoughts flameand deep in his 
throat he was swearing an inflexible persecution of Nora 
Black. The old expression of his sex came to him
 Oh, if she were only a man ! she had 
been a manhe would have fallen upon her tooth and nail. Her 
motives for all this impressed him not at all; she was simply a 
witch who bound him helpless with the pwer of her femininity
and made him eat cinders. He was so sure that his face betrayed 
him that he did not dare let her see it. " Wellwhat are you going 
to do about it ? " he askedover his shoulder. 
 0-o-oh,she drawledimpudently. "Nothing." He could see 
that she was determined not to be confessed. " I may do this or 
I may do that. It all depends upon your behaviourmy dear 
Rufus." 
As they rode onhe deliberated as to the best means of 
dealing with this condition. Suddenly he resolved to go with 
the whole tale direct to Marjoryand to this end he half wheeled 
his horse. He would reiterate that he loved her and then explainexplain 
! He groaned when he came to the wordand ceased 
formulation. 
The cavalcade reached at last the bank of the Aracthus river
with its lemon groves and lush grass. A battery wheeled before 
them over the ancient bridge -a flight of shortbroad cobbled 
steps up as far as the centre of the stream and a similar flight 
down to the other bank. The returning aplomb of the travellers 
was well illustrated by the professorwhoupon sighting this 
bridgemurmured : " Byzantine." 
This was the first indication that he had still within him a power 
to resume the normal. 
The steep and narrow street was crowded with soldiers; the 
smoky little coffee shops were a-babble with people discussing 
the news from the front. None seemed to heed the remarkable 
procession that wended its way to the cable office. Here 
Coleman resolutely took precedence. He knew that there was 
no good in expecting intelligence out of the chaotic clerksbut 
he managed to get upon the wires this message : 
 Eclipse, New York: Got Wainwright party; all well. Coleman.
The students had struggled to send messages to their people 
in Americabut they had only succeeded in deepening the 
tragic boredom of the clerks. 
When Coleman returned to the street he thought that he had 
seldom looked upon a more moving spectacle than the 
Wainwright party presented at that moment. Most of the 
students were seated in a rowdejectedlyupon the kerb. The 
professor and Mrs. Wainwright looked like two old pictures
whichafter an existence in a considerate gloomhad been 
brought out in their tawdriness to the clear light. Hot white dust 
covered everybodyand from out the grimy faces the eyes 
blinkedred-fringed with sleeplessness. Desolation sat upon all
save Marjory. She possessed some marvellous power of 
looking always fresh. This quality had indeed impressed the old 
lady on the little pony until she had said to Nora Black: "That 
girl would look well anywhere." Nora Black had not been amiable 
in her reply. 
Coleman called the professor and the dragoman for a durbar. 
The dragoman said: "WellI can get one carriageand we can 
go immediate-lee." 
 Carriage be blowed! said Coleman. " What these people 
need is restsleep. You must find a place at once. These people 
can't remain in the street." He spoke in angeras if he had 
previously told the dragoman and the latter had been 
inattentive. The man immediately departed. 
Coleman remarked that there was no course but to remain in 
the street until his dragoman had found them a habitation. It 
was a mournful waiting. The students sat on the kerb. Once 
they whispered to Colemansuggesting a drinkbut he told 
them that he knew only one cafethe entrance of which would 
be in plain sight of the rest of the party. The ladies talked 
together in a group of four. Nora Black was bursting with the 
fact that her servant had hired rooms in Arta on their outcoming 
journeyand she wished Mrs. Wainwright and Marjory to come 
to themat least for a timebut she dared not risk a refusaland 
she felt something in Mrs. Wainwright's manner which led her 
to be certain that such would be the answer to her invitation. 
Coleman and the professor strolled slowly up and down the 
walk. 
 Well, my work is over, sir,said Coleman. " My paper told 
me to find youandthrough no virtue of my ownI found you. 
I am very glad of it. I don't know of anything in my life that has 
given me greater pleasure." 
The professor was himself again in so far as he had lost all 
manner of dependence. But still he could not yet be bumptious. 
 Mr. Coleman,he saidI am placed under life-long obligation 
to you. * * * I am not thinking of myself so much. * * * My wife 
and daughter---His gratitude was so genuine that he could not 
finish its expression. 
 Oh, don't speak of it,said Coleman. " I really didn't do 
anything at all." 
The dragoman finally returned and led them all to a house 
which he had rented for gold. In the greatbareupper chamber 
the students dropped wearily to the floorwhile the woman of 
the house took the Wainwrights to a more secluded apartment.
As the door closed on themColeman turned like a flash. 
 Have a drink,he said. The students arose around him like 
the wave of a flood. "You bet." In the absence of changes of 
clothingordinary foodthe possibility of a bathand in the 
presence of great weariness and dustColeman's whisky 
seemed to them a glistening luxury. Afterward they laid down 
as if to sleepbut in reality they were too dirty and 
too fagged to sleep. They simply lay murmuring Peter Tounley 
even developed a small fever. 
It was at this time that Coleman. suddenly discovered his 
acute interest in the progressive troubles of his affair of the 
heart had placed the business of his newspaper in the rear of 
his mind. The greater part of the next hour he spent in getting 
off to New York that dispatch which created so much excitement 
for him later. Afterward he was free to reflect moodily upon the 
ability of Nora Black to distress him. Shewith her retinuehad 
disappeared toward her own rooms. At dusk he went into the 
streetand was edified to see Nora's dragoman dodging along in 
his wake. He thought that this was simply another manifestation 
of Nora's interest in his movementsand so he turned a corner
and there pausingwaited until the dragoman spun around 
directly into his arms. But it seemed that the man had a note to 
deliverand this was only his Oriental way of doing it. 
The note read: " Come and dine with me to-night." It wasnot 
a request. It was peremptory. "All right he said, scowling at 
the man. 
He did not go at once, for he wished to reflect for a time and 
find if he could not evolve some weapons of his own. It seemed 
to him that all the others were liberally supplied with weapons. 
A clear, cold night had come upon the earth when he 
signified to the lurking dragoman that he was in 
readiness to depart with him to Nora's abode. They passed 
finally into a dark court-yard, up a winding staircase, across an 
embowered balcony, and Coleman entered alone a room where 
there were lights. 
His, feet were scarcely over the threshold before he 
had concluded that the tigress was now going to try 
some velvet purring. He noted that the arts of the 
stage had not been thought too cheaply obvious for 
use. Nora sat facing the door. A bit of yellow silk 
had been twisted about the crude shape of the lamp, 
and it made the play of light, amber-like, shadowy and 
yet perfectly clear, the light which women love. She 
was arrayed in a puzzling gown of that kind of Grecian 
silk which is so docile that one can pull yards of 
it through a ring. It was of the colour of new straw. 
Her chin was leaned pensively upon her palm and the 
light fell on a pearly rounded forearm. She was 
looking at him with a pair of famous eyes, azure, perhaps-
certainly purple at times-and it may be, black 
at odd moments-a pair of eyes that had made many 
an honest man's heart jump if he thought they were 
looking at him. It was a vision, yes, but Coleman's 
cynical knowledge of drama overpowered his sense of 
its beauty. He broke out brutally, in the phrases of 
the American street. Your dragoman is a rubber-neck. 
If he keeps darking me I will simply have to 
kick the stuffing out of him." 
She was alone in the room. Her old lady had been 
instructed to have a headache and send apologies. She was not 
disturbed by Coleman's words. "Sit downRufusand have a 
cigaretteand don't be crossbecause I won't stand it." 
He obeyed her glumly. She had placed his chair where not a 
charm of her could be lost upon an observant man. Evidently 
she did not purpose to allow him to irritate her away from her 
original plan. Purring was now her methodand none of his 
insolence could achieve a growl from the tigress. She arose
saying softly: "You look tiredalmost illpoor boy. I will give 
you some brandy. I have almost everything that I could think to 
make those Daylight people buy." With a sweep of her hand 
she indicated the astonishing opulence of the possessions in 
different parts of the room. 
As she stood over him with the brandy there came through 
the smoke of his cigarette the perfume of orris-root and violet. 
A servant began to arrange the little cold dinner on a camp 
tableand Coleman saw with an enthusiasm which he could not 
fully masterfour quart bottles of a notable brand of champagne 
placed in a rank on the floor. 
At dinner Nora was sisterly. She watched himwaited upon 
himtreated him to an affectionate inti. macy for which he knew 
a thousand men who would have hated him. The champagne 
was cold. 
Slowly he melted. By the time that the boy came with little 
cups of Turkish coffee he was at least amiable. Nora talked 
dreamily. " The dragoman says this room used to be part of the 
harem long ago." She shot him a watchful glanceas if she had 
expected the fact to affect him. "Seems curiousdoesn't it? A 
harem. Fancy that." He smoked one cigar and then discarded 
tobaccofor the perfume of orris-root and violet was making 
him meditate. Nora talked on in a low voice. She knew that
through half-closed lidshe was looking at her in steady 
speculation. She knew that she was conqueringbut no 
movement of hers betrayed an elation. With the most exquisite 
art she aided his contemplationbaring to himfor instance
the glories of a statuesque neckdoing it all with the manner of 
a splendid and fabulous virgin who knew not that there was 
such a thing as shame. Her stockings were of black silk. 
Coleman presently answered her only in monosyllable
making small distinction between yes and no. He simply sat 
watching her with eyes in which there were two little covetous 
steel-coloured flames. 
He was thinkingTo go to the devil-to go to the devil-to go 
to the devil with this girl is not a bad fate-not a bad fate-not a 
bad fate.
CHAPTER XVII. 
 Come out on the balcony,cooed Nora. "There are 
some funny old storks on top of some chimneys near here 
and they clatter like mad all day and night." 
They moved together out to the balconybut Nora 
retreated with a little cry when she felt the coldness of the 
night. She said that she would get a cloak. Coleman was 
not unlike a man in a dream. He walked to the rail of the 
balcony where a great vine climbed toward the roof. He 
noted that it was dotted with. blossomswhich in the deep 
purple of the Oriental night were coloured in strange 
shades of maroon. This truth penetrated his abstraction 
until when Nora came she found him staring at them as if 
their colour was a revelation which affected him vitally. 
She moved to his side without sound and he first knew of 
her presence from the damning fragrance. She spoke just 
above her breath. "It's a beautiful evening." 
 Yes,he answered. She was at his shoulder. If he 
moved two inches he must come in contact. They 
remained in silence leaning upon the rail. 
Finally he began to mutter some commonplaces which 
meant nothing particularlybut into his tone as he mouthed 
them was the note of a forlorn and passionate lover. Then 
as if by accident he traversed the two inches and his 
shoulder was against the soft and yet firm shoulder of 
Nora Black. There was something in his throat at this 
time which changed his voice into a mere choking noise. 
She did not move. He could see her eyes glowing 
innocently out of the pallour which the darkness gave to 
her face. If he was touching hershe did not seem to 
know it. 
I am awfully tired,said Colemanthickly. "I think I 
will go home and turn in." 
 You must be, poor boy,said Nora tenderly. 
Wouldn't you like a little more of that champagne?
 Well, I don't mind another glass.
She left him again and his galloping thought pounded to 
the old refrain. " To go to the devil-to go to the devil-to go 
to the devil with this girl is not a bad fate-not a bad fatenot 
a bad fate." When she returned he drank his glass of 
champagne. Then he mumbled: " You must be cold. Let 
me put your cape around you better. It won't do to catch 
cold hereyou know." 
She made a sweet pretence of rendering herself to his 
care. " Ohthanks * * * I am not really cold * * * There 
that's better." 
Of course all his manipulation of the cloak had been a fervid 
caressand although her acting up to this point had remained in 
the role of the splendid and fabulous virgin she now turned her 
liquid eyes to his with a look that expressed knowledgetriumph 
and delight. She was sure of her victory. And she said: 
Sweetheart * * * don't you think I am as nice as Marjory ?The 
impulse had been airily confident. 
It was as if the silken cords had been parted by the sweep of 
a sword. Coleman's face had instantly stiffened and he looked 
like a man suddenly recalled to the ways of light. It may easily 
have been that in a moment he would have lapsed again to his 
luxurious dreaming. But in his face the girl had read a fatal 
character to her blunder and her resentment against him took 
precedence of any other emotion. She wheeled abruptly from 
him and said with great contempt: " Rufusyou had better go 
home. You're tired and sleepyand more or less drunk." 
He knew that the grand tumble of all their little embowered 
incident could be neither stayed or mended. "Yes he 
answered, sulkily, I think so too." They shook hands huffily 
and he went away. 
When he arrived among the students he found that they had 
appropriated everything of his which would conduce to their 
comfort. He was furious over it. But to his bitter speeches they 
replied in jibes. 
Rufus is himself again. Admire his angelic disposition. See 
him smile. Gentle soul.
A sleepy voice said from a comer: " I know what pinches 
him." 
 What ? asked several. 
He's been to see Nora and she flung him out bodily.
 Yes?sneered Coleman. "At times I seem to 
see in youCokethe fermentation of some primeval 
form of sensationas if it were possible for you to develop 
a mind in two or three thousand yearsand then 
at other times you appear * * * much as you are 
now." 
As soon as they had well measured Coleman's temper all of 
the students save Coke kept their mouths tightly closed. Coke 
either did not understand or his mood was too vindictive for 
silence. " WellI know you got a throw-down all right he 
muttered. 
And how would you know when I got a throw down? You 
pimplymilk-fed sophomore." 
The others perked up their ears in mirthful appreciation of 
this language. 
 Of course,continued Coleman no one would protest 
against your continued existence, Coke, unless you insist on 
recalling yourself violently to people's attention in this way. 
The mere fact of your living would not usually be offensive to 
people if you weren't eternally turning a sort of calcium 
light on your prehensile attributes.
Coke was suddenly angryangry much like a peasantand his 
anger first evinced itself in a mere sputtering and spluttering. 
Finally he got out a rather long speechfull of grumbling noises
but he was understood by all to declare that his prehensile 
attributes had not led him to cart a notorious woman about the 
world with him. When they quickly looked at Coleman they saw 
that he was livid. " You-" 
Butof coursethere immediately arose all sorts of protesting 
cries from the seven non-combatants. Colemanas he took two 
strides toward Coke's cornerlooked fully able to break him 
across his kneebut for this Coke did not seem to care at all. He 
was on his feet with a challenge in his eye. Upon each cheek 
burned a sudden hectic spot. The others were clamouringOh, 
say, this won't do. Quit it. Oh, we mustn't have a fight. He didn't 
mean it, Coleman.Peter Tounley pressed Coke to the wall 
saying: " You damned young jackassbe quiet." 
They were in the midst of these. festivities when a door 
opened and disclosed the professor. He might. have been 
coming into the middle of a row in one of the corridors of the 
college at home only this time he carried a candle. His speech
howeverwas a Washurst speech : " Gentlemengentlemen
what does this mean ? " All seemed to expect Coleman to make 
the answer. He was suddenly very cool. "Nothingprofessor he 
said, only that this-only that Coke has insulted me. I suppose 
that it was only the irresponsibility of a boyand I beg that you 
will not trouble over it." 
 Mr. Coke,said the professorindignantly what have 
you to say to this? Evidently he could not clearly see Coke
and he peered around his candle at where the virtuous Peter 
Tounley was expostulating with the young man. The figures of
all the excited group moving in the candle light caused vast and
uncouth shadows to have conflicts in the end of the room.
Peter Tounley's task was not lightand beyond that he had
the conviction that his struggle with Coke was making him also
to appear as a rowdy. This conviction was proven to be true by
a sudden thunder from the old professor Mr. Tounley, desist ! 
In wrath he desisted and Coke flung himself forward. He
paid less attention to the professor than if the latter had been a
jack-rabbit. " You say I insulted you? he shouted crazily in
Coleman's face.
Well * * * I meant to, do you see ? 
Coleman was glacial and lofty beyond everything.
I am glad to have you admit the truth of what I have said.
Coke wasstill suffocating with his peasant ragewhich
would not allow him to meet the clearcalm 
expressions of Coleman. "Yes * * * I insulted you * * * I insulted
you because what I said was correct * * my prehensile attributes 
* * yes but I have never----"
He was interrupted by a chorus from the other students. 
Oh, no, that won't do. Don't say that. Don't repeat that, Coke.
Coleman remembered the weak bewilderment of
the little professor in hours that had not long passed
and it was with something of an impersonal satisfac-
tion that he said to himself: " The old boy's got his
war-paint on again." The professor had stepped
sharply up to Coke and looked at him with eyes that
seemed to throw out flame and heat. There was a
moment's pauseand then the old scholar spokebit-
ing his words as if they were each a short section of
steel wire. " Mr. Cokeyour behaviour will end your
college career abruptly and in gloomI promise you.
You have been drinking."
Cokehis head simply floating in a sea of universal defiance
at once blurted out: " Yessir."
You have been drinking?cried the professorferociously.
Retire to your-retire to your----retire---And then in a voice of
thunder he shouted: "Retire."
Whereupon seven hoodlum students waited a decent
momentthen shrieked with laughter. But the old
professor would have none of their nonsense. He quelled them
all with force and finish.
Coleman now spoke a few words." ProfessorI
can't tell you how sorry I am that I should be 
concerned in any such riot as thisand since we are
doomed to be bound so closely into each other's 
society I offer myself without reservation as being 
willing to repair the damage as well as may bedone. I
don t see how I can forget at once that Coke's conduct
was insolently unwarrantedbut * * * if he has anything 
to sayof a nature that might heal the
breach I would be willing to to meet
him in the openest manner." As he made these re-
marks Coleman's dignity was something grandand
Moreverthere was now upon his face that curious 
look of temperance and purity which had been noted 
in New York as a singular physical characteristic. If 
he. was guilty of anything in this affair at all-in fact
if he had ever at any time been guilty of anythingno 
mark had come to stain that bloom of innocence. 
The professor nodded in the fullest appreciation and 
sympathy. " Of course * * * really there is no other 
sleeping placeI suppose it would be better-" 
Then he again attacked Coke. "Young manyou 
have chosen an unfortunate moment to fill us with a 
suspicion that you may not be a gentleman. For the 
time there is nothing to be done with you." He addressed 
the other students. " There is nothing for 
me to doyoung gentlemanbut to leave Mr. Coke in your care. 
Good-nightsirs. Good-nightColeman." He left the room with 
his candle. 
When Coke was bade to " Retire " he hadof coursesimply 
retreated fuming to a corner of the room where he remained 
looking with yellow eyes like an animal from a cave. When the 
others were able to see through the haze of mental confusion 
they found that Coleman was with deliberation taking off his 
boots. " Afterwardwhen he removed his waist-coathe took 
great care to wind his large gold watch. 
The studentsmuch subduedlay again in their 
placesand when there was any talking it was of an 
extremely local naturereferring principally to the 
floor As being unsuitable for beds and also referring 
from time to time to a real or an alleged selfishness 
on the part of some one of the recumbent men. Soon 
there was only the sound of heavy breathing. 
When the professor had returned to what he called the 
Wainwright part of the house he was greeted instantly with the 
question: "What was it?" His wife and daughter were up in 
alarm. "What was it " they repeatedwildly. 
He was peevish. " Ohnothingnothing. But that young 
Coke is a regular ruffian. He had gotten him. self into some 
tremendous uproar with Coleman. When I arrived he seemed 
actually trying to assault him. Revolting! He had been drinking. 
Coleman's behaviourI must saywas splendid. Recognised at once the 
delicacy of my position-he not being a student. If I had found 
him in the wrong it would have been simpler than finding him in 
the right. Confound that rascal of a Coke." Thenas he began a 
partial disrobinghe treated them to grunted scrap of information. 
 Coke was quite insane * * * I feared that I couldn't 
control him * * * Coleman was like ice * * * and as much as I 
have seen to admire in him during the last few days, this quiet 
beat it all. If he had not recognised my helplessness as far as he 
was concerned the whole thing might have been a most 
miserable business. He is a very fine young man.The 
dissenting voice to this last tribute was the voice of Mrs. 
Wainwright. She said: " WellColeman drinkstoo-everybody 
knows that." 
 I know,responded the professorrather bashfullybut I 
am confident that he had not touched a drop." Marjory said 
nothing. 
The earlier artillery battles had frightened most of the 
furniture out of the houses of Artaand there was left in this 
room only a few old red cushionsand the Wainwrights were 
camping upon the floor. Marjory was enwrapped in Coleman's 
macintoshand while the professor and his wife maintained 
some low talk of the recent incident she in silence had turned 
her cheek into the yellow velvet collar of the coat. She felt 
something against her bosomand putting her hand 
carefully into the top pocket of the coat she found three cigars. 
These she took in the darkness and laid asidetelling herself to 
remember their position in the morning. She had no doubt that 
Coleman: would rejoice over thembefore he could get back to
Athens where there were other good cigars. 
CHAPTER XVIII. 
THE ladies of the Wainwright party had not complained 
at all when deprived of even such civilised advantages as a 
shelter and a knife and fork and soap and waterbut Mrs. 
Wainwright complained bitterly amid the half-civilisation of 
Arta. She could see here no excuse for the absence of several 
hundred things which she had always regarded as essential to 
life. She began at 8.30 A. M. to make both the professor and 
Marjory woeful with an endless dissertation upon the beds in 
the hotel at Athens. Of course she had not regarded them at 
the time as being exceptional beds * * * that was quite true* 
* * but then one really never knew what one was really missing 
until one really missed it * * * She would never have thought 
that she would come to consider those Athenian beds as 
excellent * * * but experience is a great teacher * * * makesone 
reflect upon the people who year in and year out have no 
beds at allpoor things. * * * Wellit made one glad if one did 
have a good bedeven if it was at the time on the other side of 
the world. If she ever reached it she did not know what could 
ever induce her to leave it again. * * * She would never be 
induced--
'Induced!'snarled the professor. The word represented to 
him a practiced feminine misusage of truthand at such his 
white warlock always arose. "" Induced!' Out of four American 
women I have seen latelyyou seem to be the only one who 
would say that you had endured this thing because you had 
been 'induced' by others to come over here. How absurd!" 
Mrs. Wainwright fixed her husband with a steely eye. She 
saw opportunity for a shattering retort. " You don't mean
Harrisonto include Marjory and I in the same breath with 
those two women? " 
The professor saw no danger ahead for himself. He merely 
answered: " I had no thought either way. It did not seem 
important." 
 Well, it is important,snapped Mrs. Wainwright. 
 Do you know that you are speaking in the same breath of 
Marjory and Nora Black, the actress? 
 No,said the professor. " Is that so ? " He was astonished
but he was not aghast at all. "Do you mean to say that is Nora 
Blackthe comic opera star ? " 
 That's exactly who she is,said Mrs. Wainwright
dramatically. " And I consider that-I consider that Rufus 
Coleman has done no less than-misled us." 
This last declaration seemed to have no effect upon the 
professor's pure astonishmentbut Marjory looked at her 
mother suddenly. Howevershe said no word
exhibiting again that strange andinscrutable countenance 
which masked even the tiniest of her maidenly emotions. 
Mrs. Wainwright was triumphantand she immediately set 
about celebrating her victory. " Men never see those things 
she said to her husband. Men never see those things. You 
would have gone on forever without finding out that your-yourhospitality 
wasbeing abused by that Rufus Coleman." 
The professor woke up." Hospitality ?" he said
indignantly. " Hospitality ? I have not had any 
hospitality to be abused. Why don't you talk sense? 
It is not thatbut-it might-" He hesitated and 
then spoke slowly. " It might be very awkward. Of 
course one never knows anything definite about such 
peoplebut I suppose * * * Anyhowit was strange 
in Coleman to allow her to meet us. " 
It Was all a pre-arranged plan,announced the 
triumphant Mrs. Wainwright. " She came here on putpose 
to meet Rufus Colemanand he knew itand I should not 
wonder if they had not the exact spot picked out where 
they were going to meet." 
I can hardly believe that,said the professorin distress. 
I can, hardly believe that. It does, not seem to me that 
Coleman--
 Oh yes. Your dear Rufus Coleman,cried Mrs. 
Wainwright. " You think he is very fine now. But 
I can remember when you didn't think---" 
And the parents turned together an abashed look at their 
daughter. The professor actually flushed with shame. It seemed 
to him that he had just committed an atrocity upon the heart of 
his child. The instinct of each of them was to go to her and 
console her in their arms. She noted it immediatelyand seemed 
to fear it. She spoke in a clear and even voice. " I don't think
fatherthat you should distress me by supposing that I am 
concerned at all if Mr. Coleman cares to get Nora Black over 
here." 
 Not at all,stuttered the professor. " I---" 
Mrs. Wainwright's consternation turned suddenly toanger. 
 He is a scapegrace. A rascal. A-- a--
 Oh,said Marjorycoolly I don't see why it isn't his own 
affair. He didn't really present her to you, mother, you 
remember? She seemed quite to force her way at first, and then 
you-you did the rest. It should be very easy to avoid her, now 
that we are out of the wilderness. And then it becomes a private 
matter of Mr. Coleman's. For my part, I rather liked her. I don't 
see such a dreadful calamity.
Marjory!screamed her mother. "How dreadful. Liked her! 
Don't let me hear you say such shocking things." 
 I fail to see anything shocking,answered Marjory
stolidly. 
The professor was looking helplessly from his 
daughter to his wifeand from his wife to his daughter
like a man who was convinced that his troubles 
would never end. This new catastrophe created a 
different kind of difficultybut he considered that the 
difficulties were as robust as had been the preceding 
ones. He put on his hat and went out of the room. 
He felt an impossibility of saying anything to 
Colemanbut he felt that he must look upon him. He 
must look upon this man and try to know from his 
manner the measure of guilt. And incidentally he 
longed for the machinery of a finished society which 
prevents its parts from clashingprevents it with its 
great series of I law upon laweasily operative but 
relentless. Here he felt as a man flung into the jungle 
with his wife and daughter
where they could become the victims of any sort of savagery. 
His thought referred once more to what he considered the invaluable 
services of Colemanand as he observed them in conjunction 
with the present accusationhe was simply dazed. It was then 
possible that one man could play two such divergent parts. He 
had not learned this at Washurst. But no; the world was not 
such a bed of putrefaction. He would not believe it; he would 
not believe it. 
After adventures which require great nervous en. duranceit 
is only upon the second or third night that the common man 
sleeps hard. The students had expected to slumber like dogs on 
the first night after their trials. but none slept longAnd few 
slept. 
Coleman was the first man to arise. When he left the room 
the students were just beginning to blink. He took his 
dragoman among the shops and he bought there all the little 
odds and ends which might go to make up the best breakfast in 
Arta. If he had had news of certain talk he probably would not 
have been buying breakfast for eleven people. Insteadhe 
would have been buying breakfast for one. During his absence 
the students arose and performed their frugal toilets. 
Considerable attention was paid to Coke by the others. " He 
made a monkey of you said Peter Tounley with unction. He 
twisted you until you looked like a wetgrey rag. You had 
better leave this wise guy alone." 
It was not the night nor was it meditation that had taught 
Coke anythingbut he seemed to have learned something from 
the mere lapse of time. In appearance he was subduedbut he 
managed to make a temporary jauntiness as he said : " OhI 
don't know." 
 Well, you ought to know,said he who was called Billie. 
You ought to know. You made an egregious snark of 
yourself. Indeed, you sometimes resembled a boojum. Anyhow, 
you were a plain chump. You exploded your face about 
something of which you knew nothing, and I'm damned if I 
believe you'd make even a good retriever.
You're a half-bred water-spaniel,blurted Peter Tounley. 
And,he addedmusinglythat is a pretty low animal.
Coke was argumentative. "Why am I? " he askedturning his 
head from side to side. " I don't see where I was so wrong." 
 Oh, dances, balloons, picnics, parades and ascensions,
they retortedprofanely. " You swam voluntarily into water that 
was too deep for you. Swim out. Get dry. Here's a towel." 
Cokesmitten in the face with a wet cloth rolled into a ball
grabbed it and flung it futilely at a well-dodging 
companion " No he cried, I don't see it. Now look here. I 
don't see why we shouldn't all resent this Nora Black 
business." 
One student said: "Wellwhat's the matter with Nora B lack
anyhow ?" 
Another student said "I don't see how you've been issued 
any license to say things about Nora Black." 
Another student said dubiously: " Wellhe knows her well." 
And then three or four spoke at once. " He was very badly 
rattled when she appeared upon the scene." 
Peter Tounley asked: "Wellwhich of you people know 
anything wrong about Nora Black? " 
There was a pauseand then Coke said: " Ohof course-I 
don't know-but-" 
He who was called Billie then addressed his com- panions. 
 It wouldn't be right to repeat any old lie about Nora Black, and 
by the same token it wouldn't be right to see old Mother 
Wainwright chummin' with her. There is no wisdom in going 
further than that. Old Mother Wainwright don't know that her 
fair companion of yesterday is the famous comic opera star. For 
my part, I believe that Coleman is simply afraid to tell her. I 
don't think he wished to see Nora Black yesterday any more 
than he wished to see the devil. The discussion, as I 
understand itconcerned itself only with what Coleman had to 
do with the thing, and yesterday anybody could see that he 
was in a panic.
They heard a step on the stairand directly Coleman entered
followed by his dragoman. They were laden with the raw 
material for breakfast. The correspondent looked keenly among 
the studentsfor it was plain that they had been talking of him. 
Itfilled him with rageand for a stifling moment he could not 
think why he failed to immediately decamp in chagrin and leave 
eleven orphans to whatever fate. their general incompetence 
might lead them. It struck him as a deep shame that even then 
he and his paid man were carrying in the breakfast. He wanted 
to fling it all on the floor and walk out. Then he remembered 
Marjory. She was the reason. She was the reason for 
everything. 
But he could not repress certainof his thoughts. "Sayyou 
people he said, icily, you had better soon learn to hustle for 
yourselves. I may be a dragomanand a butlerand a cookand 
a housemaidbut I'm blowed if I'm a wet nurse." In realityhe 
had taken the most generous pleasure in working for the others 
before their eyes had even been opened from sleepbut it was 
now all turned to wormwood. It is certain that even this could 
not have deviated this executive man from labour and
management. because these were his life. But he felt that he was
about to walk out of the roomconsigning them all to Hades.
His glance of angryreproach fastened itself mainly upon Peter
Tounleybecause he knew that of allPeter was the most
innocent.
PeterTounley was abashed by this glance. So you've
brought us something to eatold man. That is tremendously
nice of you-we-appreciate it like everything."
Coleman was mollified by Peter's tone. Peter had had that
emotion which is equivalent to a sense of guiltalthough in
reality he was speckless. Two or three of the other students
bobbed up to a sense of the situation. They ran to Coleman
and with polite cries took his provisions from him. One dropped
a bunch of lettuce on the floorand others reproached him with
scholastic curses. Coke was seated near the windowhalf
militanthalf conciliatory. It was
impossible for him to keep up a manner of deadly enmity while
Coleman was bringing in his breakfast. He would have much
preferred that Coleman had not brought in his breakfast. He
would have much preferred to have foregone breakfast
altogether. He would have much preferred anything. There
seemed to be a conspiracy of circumstance to put him in the
wrong and make him appear as a ridiculous young peasant. He
was the victim of a benefactionand he hated Coleman harder
now than at any previous time. He saw that if he stalked out
and took his breakfast alone in a cafethe others would
consider him still more of an outsider. Coleman had expressed
himself like a man of the world and a gentlemanand Coke was
convinced that he was a superior man of the world and a
superior gentlemanbut that he simply had not had words to
express his position at the proper time. Coleman was glib.
ThereforeCoke had been the victim of an attitude as well as of
a benefaction. And so he deeply hated Coleman.
The others were talking cheerfully. "What the deuce are
theseColeman ? Sausages? Ohmy. And look at these
burlesque fishes. Saythese Greeks don't care what they eat.
Them thar things am sardines in the crude state. No ? Great
Godlook at those things. Look. What? Yesthey are.
Radishes. Greek synonym for radishes."
The professor entered. " Oh he said apologetically, 
as if he were intruding in a boudoir. All his serious desire
to probe Coleman to the bottom ended in embarrassment.
Mayhap it was not a law of feeling, but it happened at any rate.
He had come in a puzzled frame of mindeven an accusative
frame of mindand almost immediately he found himself suffer.
ing like a culprit before his judge. It is a phenomenon of what
we call guilt and innocence.
 Coleman welcomed him cordially. Wellprofessor
good-morning. I've rounded up some things that at least may be
eaten."
 You are very good very considerateMr. Coleman
answered the professor, hastily. I'am sure we are much
indebted to you." He had scanned the correspondent's face
land it had been so devoid of guile that he was fearful that his
suspiciona base suspicionof this noble soul would be
detected. " Nonowe can never thank you enough."
Some of the students began to caper with a sort of decorous 
hilarity before their teacher. " Look at the sausageprofessor. 
Did you ever see such sausage " Isn't it salubrious " And see 
these other thingssir. Aren't they curious " I shouldn't wonder 
if they were alive. Turnipssir? Nosir. I think they are 
Pharisees. I have seen a Pharisee look like a pelicanbut I have 
never seen a Pharisee look like a turnipso I think these turnips 
must be PhariseessirYesthey may be walrus. We're not sure. 
Anyhowtheir angles are geometrically all wrong. Peterlook out." 
Some green stuff was flung across the room. The professor laughed; 
Coleman laughed. Despite Cokedark-browedsulking. and yet 
desirous of reinstating himselfthe room had waxed warm with 
the old college feelingthe feeling of lads who seemed never to 
treat anything respectfully and yet at the same time managed to 
treat the real things with respect. The professor himself 
contributed to their wild carouse over the strange Greek viands. 
It was a vivacious moment common to this class in times of 
relaxationand it was understood perfectly. 
Coke arose. " I don't see that I have any friends here he 
said, hoarsely, and in consequence I don't see why I should 
remain here." 
All looked at him. At the same moment Mrs. Wainwright and 
Marjory entered the room. 
CHAPTER XIX. 
Good-morning,said Mrs. Wainwright jovially to the 
students and then she stared at Coleman as if he were a sweep 
at a wedding. 
 Good-morning,said Marjory. 
Coleman and the students made reply. " Good-morning. 
Good-morning. Good-morning. Good-morning--" 
It was curious to see this greetingthis common phrasethis 
bit of old warethis antiquecome upon a dramatic scene and 
pulverise it. Nothing remained but a ridiculous dust. Coke
gloweringwith his lips still trembling from heroic speechwas 
an angry clowna pantaloon in rage. Nothing was to be done to 
keep him from looking like an ass. Hestrode toward the door 
mumbling about a walk before breakfast. 
Mrs. Wainwright beamed upon him. " WhyMr. Cokenot 
before breakfast ? You surely won't have time." It was grim 
punishment. He appeared to go blindand he fairly staggered 
out of the door mumbling againmumbling thanks or apologies 
or explanations. About the mouth of Coleman played a sinister 
smile. The professor cast. upon his wife a glance expressing 
weariness. It was as if he said " There you go again. You 
can't keep your foot out of it." She understood the glance
and so she asked blankly: "WhyWhat's the matter? Oh." 
Her belated mind grasped that it waw an aftermath of the 
quarrel of Coleman and Coke. Marjory looked as if she 
was distressed in the belief that her mother had been 
stupid. Coleman was outwardly serene. It was Peter 
Tounley who finally laughed a cheeryhealthy laugh and they 
all looked at him with gratitude as if his sudden mirth had been 
a real statement or recon- ciliation and consequent peace. 
The dragoman and others disported themselves until a 
breakfast was laid upon the floor. The adventurers squatted 
upon the floor. They made a large company. The professor and 
Coleman discussed the means of getting to Athens. Peter 
Tounley sat next to Marjory. " Peter she said, privately, what 
was all this trouble between Coleman and Coke ? " 
Peter answered blandly: " Ohnothing at Nothing at all." 
 Well, but--she persisted what was the cause of it?
He looked at her quaintly. He was not one of those in love 
with herbut be was interested in the affair. " Don't you know 
? " he asked. 
She understood from his manner that she had been some 
kind of an issue in the quarrel. " No she answered, hastily. I 
don't." 
Oh, I don't mean that,said Peter. "I only meant --I only 
meant--ohwellit was nothing-really." 
 It must have been about something,continued Marjory. 
She continuedbecause Peter had denied that she was 
concerned in it. " Whose fault ? " 
I really don't know. It was all rather confusing,lied Peter
tranquilly. 
Coleman and the professor decided to accept a plan of the 
correspondent's dragoman to start soon on the first stage of 
the journey to Athens. The dragoman had said that he had 
found two large carriages rentable. 
Cokethe outcastwalked alone in the narrow streets. The 
flight of the crown prince's army from Larissa had just been 
announced in Artabut Coke was probably the most 
woebegone object on the Greek peninsula. 
He encountered a strange sight on the streets. A woman 
garbed in the style for walking of an afternoon on upper 
Broadway was approaching him through a mass of kilted 
mountaineers and soldiers in soiled overcoats. Of course he 
recognised Nora Black. 
In his conviction that everybody in the world was at this 
time considering him a mere wormhe was sure that she would 
not heed him. Beyond that he had been presented to her notice 
in but a transient and cursory fashion. But contrary to his 
convictionshe turned a radiant smile upon him. " Oh she 
said, brusquely, you are one of the students. Good 
morning." In her manner was all the confidence of an old 
warriora veteranwho addresses the universe with assurance 
because of his past battles. 
Coke grinned at this strange greeting. " YesMiss Black he 
answered, I am one of the students." 
She did not seem to quite know how to formulate her next 
speech. " Er-I suppose you're going to Athens at once " You 
must be glad after your horrid experiences." 
 I believe they are going to start for Athens today,said 
Coke. 
Nora was all attention. "'They ?'" she repeated. 
Aren't you going with them? 
 Well,he said * * Well---
She saw of course that there had been some kind of trouble. 
She laughed. " You look as if somebody had kicked you down 
stairs she said, candidly. She at once assumed an intimate 
manner toward him which was like a temporary motherhood. 
Comewalk with me and tell me all about it." There was in her 
tone a most artistic suggestion that whatever had happened 
she was on his side. He was not loath. The street was full of 
soldiers whose tongues clattered so loudly that the two 
foreigners might have been wandering in a great cave of the 
winds. " Wellwhat was the row about ? " asked Nora. " And 
who was in it? " 
It would have been no solace to Coke to pour out 
his tale even if it had been a story that he could have told Nora. 
He was not stopped by the fact that he had gotten himself in 
the quarrel because he had insulted the name of the girt at his 
side. He did not think of it at that time. The whole thing was 
now extremely vague in outline to him and he only had a dull 
feeling of misery and loneliness. He wanted her to cheer him. 
Nora laughed again. " Whyyou're a regular little kid. Do 
you mean to say you've come out here sulking alone because 
of some nursery quarrel? " He was ruffled by her manner. It did 
not contain the cheering he required. " OhI don't know that I'm 
such a regular little kid he said, sullenly. The quarrel was 
not a nursery quarrel." 
Why don't you challenge him to a duel? asked Nora
suddenly. She was watching him closely. 
 Who?said Coke. 
 Coleman, you stupid,answered Nora. 
They stared at each otherCoke paying her first the tribute 
of astonishment and then the tribute of admiration. "Why
how did you guess that?" he demanded. 
 Oh,said Nora. I've known Rufus Coleman for years, 
and he is always rowing with people.
That is just it,cried Coke eagerly. "That is just it. 
I fairly hate the man. Almost all of the other fellows 
will stand his abusebut it riles meI tell 
you. I think he is a beast. Andof courseif you seriously 
meant what you said about challenging him to a duel--I 
mean if there is any sense in that sort of thing-I would 
challenge Coleman. I swear I would. I think he's a great 
blufferanyhow. Shouldn't wonder if he would back out. 
ReallyI shouldn't. 
Nora smiled humourously at a house on her side of the 
narrow way. "I wouldn't wonder if he did either " she 
answered. After a time she said " Welldo you mean to 
say that you have definitely shaken them? Aren't you 
going back to Athens with them or anything? " 
 I-I don't see how I can,he saidmorosely. 
 Oh,she said. She reflected for a time. At last she 
turned to him archly and asked: "Some words over a 
lady?" 
Coke looked at her blankly. He suddenly remembered 
the horrible facts. " No-no-not over a lady." 
 My dear boy, you are a liar,said Norafreely. "You 
are a little unskilful liar. It was some words over a lady
and the lady's name is Marjory Wainwright." 
Coke felt as though he had suddenly been let out of a 
cellbut he continued a mechanical denial. "Nono * * It 
wasn't truly * * upon my word * * " 
Nonsense,said Nora. " I know better. Don't you 
think you can fool meyou little cub. I know 
you're in love with Marjory Wainwrightand you think 
Coleman is your rival. What a blockhead you are. Can't 
you understand that people see these things?" 
 Well-stammered Coke. 
Nonsense,said Nora again. "Don't try to fool 
meyou may as well understand that it's useless. I 
am too wise." 
 Well-stammered Coke. 
 Go ahead,urged Nora. " Tell me about it. Have it 
out." 
He began with great importance and solemnity. "Now
to tell you the truth * * that is why I hate him * * I hate him 
like anything. * * I can't see why everybody admires him so. 
I don't see anything to him myself. I don't believe he's got 
any more principle than a wolf. I wouldn't trust him with 
two dollars. WhyI know stories about him that would 
make your hair curl. When I think of a girl like Marjory-- " 
His speech had become a torrent. But here Nora 
raised her hand. " Oh! Oh! Oh! That will do. That will do. 
Don't lose your senses. I don't see why this girl Marjory 
is any too good. She is no chickenI'll bet. Don't let 
yourself get fooled with that sort of thing." 
Coke was unaware of his incautious expressions. He 
floundered on. while Nora looked at him as if she 
wanted to wring his neck. " No-she's too fine and 
too good-for him or anybody like him-she's too 
fine and too good-" 
 Aw, rats,interrupted Norafuriously. "You 
make me tired." 
Coke had a wooden-headed conviction that he must 
make Nora understand Marjory's infinite superiority 
to all others of her sexand so he passed into a 
pariegyriceach word of which was a hot coal to the girl 
addressed. Nothing would stop himapparently. He 
even made the most stupid repetitions. Nora finally 
stamped her foot formidably. "Will you stop? 
Will you stop ? " she said through her clenched teeth. 
 Do you think I want to listen to your everlasting 
twaddle about her? Why, she's-she's no better than 
other people, you ignorant little mamma's boy. She's 
no better than other people, you swab! 
Coke looked at her with the eyes of a fish. He did 
not understand. "But she is better than other 
people he persisted. 
Nora seemed to decide suddenly that there would 
be no accomplishment in flying desperately against 
this rock-walled conviction. Ohwell she said, 
with marvellous good nature, perhaps you are right
numbskull. Butlook here; do you think she cares 
for him?" 
In his hearthis jealous hearthe believed that 
Marjory loved Colemanbut he reiterated eternally to 
himself that it was not true. As for speaking it to
anotherthat was out of the question. " No he 
said, stoutly, she doesn't care a snap for him." If 
he had admitted itit would have seemed to him that. 
he was somehow advancing Coleman's chances. 
'Oh, she doesn't, eh ?said Nora enigmatically. 
She doesn't?He studied her face with an abrupt
miserable suspicionbut he repeated doggedly: " No
she doesn't." 
Ahem,replied Nora. " Whyshe's set her cap 
for him all right. She's after him for certain. It's as 
plain as day. Can't you see thatstupidity ?" 
No,he said hoarsely. 
You are a fool,said Nora. " It isn't Coleman 
that's after her. It is she that is after Coleman." 
Coke was mulish. " No such thing. Coleman's 
crazy about her. Everybody has known it ever 
since he was in college. You ask any of the other 
fellows." 
Nora was now very seriousalmost doleful. She 
remained still for a timecasting at Coke little glances 
of hatred. " I don't see my way clear to ask any of 
the other fellows she said at last, with considerable 
bitterness. I'm not in the habit of conducting such 
enquiries." 
Coke felt now that he disliked herand he read 
plainly her dislike of him. If they were the two 
villains of the playthey were not having fun together 
at all. Each had some kind of a deep knowledge that 
their aspirationsfar from collidingwere of such 
character that the success of one would mean at least 
assistance to the otherbut neither could see how to 
confess if. Pethapt it was from shameperhaps it 
was because Nora thought Coke to have little wit ; 
perhaps it was because Coke thought Nora to have 
little conscience. Their talk was mainly rudderless.
From time to time Nora had an inspiration to come
boldly at the pointbut this inspiration was commonly
defeated bysome extraordinary manifestation of
Coke's incapacity. To her mindthenit seemed like
a proposition to ally herself to a butcher-boy in a
matter purely sentimental. She Wondered indignantly 
how she was going to conspire With this lad
who puffed out his infantile cheeks in order to conceitedly
demonstrate that he did not understand the
game at all. She hated Marjory for it. Evidently it
was only the weaklings who fell in love with that girl.
Coleman was an exceptionbut thenColeman was
misledby extraordinary artifices. She meditatecf for
a moment if she should tell Coke to go home and not
bother her. What at last decided the question was
his unhappiness. Shd clung to this unhappiness for
its value as it stood aloneand because its reason for
existence was related to her own unhappiness. " You
Say you are not going back toAthens with your party.
I don't suppose you're going to stay here. I'm going
back to Athens to-day. I came up here to see a
battlebut it doesn't seem that there are to be any
more battles.The fighting will now all be on the
other side of'the mountains." Apparent she had
learned in some haphazard way that the Greek 
peninsula was divided by a spine of almost inaccessible
mountainsand the war was thus split into two 
simultaneous campaigns. The Arta campaign was known
to be ended. "If you want to go back to Athens
without consorting with your friendsyou had better go
back with me. I can take you in my carriage as far
as the beginning of the railroad. Don't you worry.
You've got money enoughhaven't you ? The pro-
fessor isn't keeping your money ?"
Yes,he said slowlyI've got money enough.
He was apparently dubious over the proposal.
In their abstracted walk they had arrived in front of
the house occupied by Coleman and the Wainwright
party. Two carriagesforlorn in dusty agestood be-
fore the door. Men were carrying out new leather
luggage and flinging it into the traps amid a great
deal of talk which seemed to refer to nothing. Nora
and Coke stood looking at the scene without either
thinking of the importance of running awaywhen
out tumbled seven studentsfollowed immediately but
in more decorous fashion by the Wainwrights and
Coleman.
Some student set up a whoop. " Ohthere he is.
There's Coke. HeyCokewhere you been? Here
he isprofessor."
For a moment after the hoodlum had subsidedthe
two camps stared at each other in silence.
CHAPTER XX.
NORA and Coke were an odd looking pair at the
time. They stood indeed as if rooted to the spot
staring vacuouslylike two villagersat the surprising 
travellers. It was not an eternity before the practiced 
girl of the stage recovered her poisebut to the end of 
the incident the green youth looked like a culprit and 
a fool. Mrs. Wainwright's glower of offensive 
incredulity was a masterpiece. Marjory nodded 
pleasantly; the professor nodded. The seven students 
clambered boisterously into the forward carriage 
making it clang with noise like a rook's nest. They 
shouted to Coke. " Come on; all aboard; come on
Coke; - we're off. HeythereCokeyhurry up." 
The professoras soon as he had seated himself on 
the forward seat of' the second carriageturned in 
Coke's general direction and asked formally: " Mr. 
Cokeyou are coming with us ? " He felt seemingly 
much in doubt as to the propriety of abandoning the 
headstrong young manand this doubt was not at all 
decreased by Coke's appearance with Nora Black. As 
far as he could tellany assertion of authority on his 
part would end only in a scene in which Coke would 
probably insult him with some gross violation of 
collegiate conduct. As at first the young man made 
no replythe professor after waiting spoke again. 
You understand, Mr. Coke, that if you separate 
yourself from the party you encounter my strongest 
disapproval, and if I did not feel responsible to the 
college and your father for your safe journey to New 
York I-I don't know but what I would have you expelled 
by cable if that were possible.
Although Coke had been silentand Nora Black had 
had the appearance of being silentin reality she had 
lowered her chin and whispered sideways and swiftly. 
She had said: " Nowhere's your time. Decide 
quicklyand don't look such a wooden Indian." 
Coke pulled himself together with a visible effort
and spoke to the professor from an inspiration in 
which he had no faith. " I understand my duties to 
yousirperfectly. I also understand my duty to the 
college. But I fail to see where either of these 
obligations require me to accept the introduction of 
objectionable people into the party. If I owe a duty to 
the college and to youI don't owe any to Coleman
andas I understand itColeman was not in the 
original plan of this expedition. If such had been the 
caseI would not have been here. I can't tell what 
the college may see fit to dobut as for my father I 
I have no doubt of how he will view it." 
The first one to be electrified by the speech was 
Coke himself. He saw with a kind of sub-conscious 
amazement this volley of bird-shot take effect upon 
the face of the old professor. The face of Marjory 
flushed crimson as if her mind had sprung to a fear 
that if Coke could develop ability in this singular 
fashion he might succeed in humiliating her father in 
the street in the presence of the seven studentsher 
motherColeman and-herself. She had felt the birdshot 
sting her father. 
When Coke had launched forthColeman with his 
legs stretched far apart had just struck a match on 
the wall of the house and was about to light a cigar. 
His groom was leading up his horse. He saw the 
value of Coke's argument more appreciatively and 
sooner perhaps than did Coke. The match dropped 
from his fingersand in the white sunshine and still 
air it burnt on the pavement orange coloured and 
with langour. Coleman held his cigar with all five 
fingers-in a manner out of all the laws of smoking. 
He turned toward Coke. There was danger in the 
momentbut then in a flash it came upon him that 
his role was not of squabbling with Cokefar less of 
punching him. On the contraryhe was to act the 
part of a cool and instructed man who refused to be 
waylaid into foolishness by the outcries of this 
pouting youngster and who placed himself in complete 
deference to the wishes of the professor. Before the 
professor had time to embark upon any reply to Coke
Coleman was at the side of the carriage andwith a 
fine assumption of distresswas saying: "Professor
I could very easily ride back to Agrinion alone. It 
would be all right. I don't want to-" 
To his surprise the professor waved at him to be 
silent as if he were a mere child. The old man's face 
was set with the resolution of exactly what hewas 
going to say to Coke. He began in measured tone
speaking with feelingbut with no trace of anger. 
 Mr. Coke, it has probably escaped your attention 
that Mr. Coleman, at what I consider a great deal of 
peril to himself, came out to rescue this party-you 
and others-and although he studiously disclaims all 
merit in his finding us and bringing us in, I do not 
regard it in that way, and I am surprised that any 
member of this party should conduct himself in 
this manner toward a man who has been most 
devotedly and generously at our service.It was 
at this time that the professor raised himself and 
shook his finger at Cokehis voice now ringing with 
scorn. In such moments words came to him and 
formed themselves into sentences almost too rapidly 
for him to speak them. " You are one of the most 
remarkable products of our civilisation which I have 
yet come upon. What do you meansir? Where 
are your senses? Do you think that all this pulling 
and pucking is manhood? I will tell you what I will 
do with you. I thought I brought out eight students 
to Greecebut when I find that I brought outseven 
students and--er--an--ourang-outang--don't get 
angrysir--I don't care for your anger--I say when I 
discover this I am naturally puzzled for a moment. I 
will leave you to the judgment of your peers. Young 
gentlemen! " 
Of the seven heads of the forward carriage none 
had to be turned. All had been turned since the 
beginning of the talk. If the professor's speech had 
been delivered in one of the class-rooms of 
Washurst they would have glowed with delight over the 
butchery of Cokebut they felt its portentous aspect. 
Butchery here in Greece thousands of miles from 
home presented to them more of the emphasis of 
downright death and destruction. The professor 
called out " Young gentlemenI have done all that I 
can do without using forcewhichmuch to my regret
is impracticable. If you will persuade your fellow 
student to accompany you I think our consciences 
will be the better for not having left a weak minded 
brother alone among the by-paths." 
The valuable aggregation of intelligence and refinement 
which decorated the interior of the first carriage 
did not hesitate over answering this appeal. In fact
his fellow students had worried among themselves 
over Cokeand their desire to see him come out of his 
troubles in fair condition was intensified by the fact 
that they had lately concentrated much thought upon 
him. There was a somewhat comic pretense of 
speaking so that only Coke could hear. Their chorus was 
law sung. " Ohcheese itCoke. Let up on your-self
you blind ass. Wait till you get to Athens and 
then go and act like a monkey. All this is no 
good-" 
The advice which came from the carriage was all in 
one directionand there was so much of it that the 
hum of voices sounded like a wind blowing through a 
forest. 
Coke spun suddenly and said something to Nora 
Black. Nora laughed rather loudlyand then the two 
turned squarely and the Wainwright party contemplated 
what were surely at that time the two most insolent 
backs in the world. 
The professor looked as if he might be going to 
have a fit. Mrs. Wainwright lifted her eyes toward 
heavenand flinging out her trembling handscried: 
 Oh, what an outrage. What an outrage! That 
minx-The concensus of opinion in the first carriage 
was perfectly expressed by Peter Tounleywho 
with a deep drawn breathsaid : " WellI'm damned! " 
Marjory had moaned and lowered her head as from a 
sense of complete personal shame. Coleman lit his 
cigar and mounted his horse. " WellI suppose there 
is nothing for it but to be offprofessor? " His tone 
was full of regretwith sort of poetic regret. For a 
moment the professor looked at him blanklyand then 
gradually recovered part of his usual manner. " Yes 
he said sadly, there is nothing for it but to go on." 
At a word from the dragomanthe two impatient 
drivers spoke gutturally to their horses and the carriages 
whirled out of Arta. Colemanhis dragoman 
and the groom trotted in the dust from the wheels of 
the Wainwright carriage. The correspondent always 
found his reflective faculties improved by the constant 
pounding of a horse on the trotand he was not sorry 
to have now a period for reflectionas well as this 
artificial stimulant. As he viewed the game he had in his 
hand about all the cards that were valuable. In fact
he considered that the only ace against him was Mrs. 
Wainwright. He had always regarded her as a stupid 
personconcealing herself behind a mass of trivialities 
which were all conventionalbut he thought now that 
the more stupid she was and the more conventional in 
her triviality the more she approached to being the 
very ace of trumps itself. She was just the sort of a 
card that would come upon the table mid the neat 
play of experts and by some inexplicable arrangement 
of circumstancelose a whole game for the wrong man. 
After Mrs. Wainwright he worried over the students. 
He believed them to be reasonable enough; 
in facthe honoured them distinctly in regard to their 
powers of reasonbut he knew that people generally 
hated a row. Itput them off their balancemade 
them sweat over a lot of pros and consand prevented 
them from thinking for a time at least only of themselves. 
Then they came to resent the principals in a 
row. Of course the principalwho was thought to be 
in the wrongwas the most rescntedbut Coleman believed 
thatafter allpeople always came to resent the 
other principalor at least be impatient and suspicious 
of him. If he was a correct personwhy was 
he in a row at all? The principal who had been in 
the right often brought this impatience and suspicion 
upon himselfno doubtby never letting the matter 
endcontinuing to yawp about his virtuous suffering
and not allowing people to return to the steady 
contemplation of their own affairs. As a precautionary 
measure he decided to say nothing at all about the 
late troubleunless some one addressed him upon it. 
Even then he would be serenely laconic. He felt that 
he must be popular with the seven students. In the 
first placeit was nice that in the presence of Marjory 
they should like himand in the second place he 
feared to displease them as a body because he believed 
that he had some dignity. Hoodlums are seldom 
dangerous to other hoodlumsbut if they catch 
pomposity alone in the fieldpomposity is their prey. 
They tear him to mere bloody ribbonsamid heartless 
shrieks. When Coleman put himself on the same 
basis with the studentshe could cope with them 
easilybut he did not want the wild pack after him 
when Marjory could see the chase. And so be reasoned 
that his best attitude was to be one of rather 
taciturn serenity. 
On the hard military road the hoofs of the horses 
made such clatter that it was practically impossible to 
hold talk between the carriages and the horsemen 
without all parties bellowing. The professorhowever
strove to overcome the difficulties. He was 
apparently undergoing a great amiability toward 
Coleman. Frequently he turned with a bright faceand 
pointing to some object in the landscapeobviously 
tried to convey something entertaining to Coleman's 
mind. Coleman could see his lips mouth the words. 
He always nodded cheerily in answer and yelled. 
The road ultimately became that straight lance-handle 
which Coleman-it seemed as if many years had 
passed-had traversed with his dragoman and the 
funny little carriers. He was fixing in his mind a 
possible story to the Wainwrights about the snake and 
his first dead Turk. But suddenly the carriages left 
this road and began a circuit of the Gulf of Arta
winding about an endless series of promontories. The 
journey developed into an excess of dust whirling from 
a roadwhich half circled the waist of cape after cape. 
All dramatics were lost in the rumble of wheels and 
in the click of hoofs. They passed a little soldier 
leading a prisoner by a string. They passed more 
frightened peasantswho seemed resolved to flee down 
into the very boots of Greece. And people looked at 
them with scowlsenvying them their speed. At the 
little town from which Coleman embarked at one stage 
of the upward journeythey found crowds in the 
streets. There was no longer any laughterany confidence
any vim. All the spirit of the visible Greek 
nation seemed to have been knocked out of it in two 
blows. But still they talked and never ceased talking. 
Coleman noticed that the most curious changes had 
come upon them since his journey to the frontier. 
They no longer approved of foreigners. They seemed 
to blame the travellers for something which had 
transpired in the past few days. It was not that they 
really blamed the travellers for the nation's calamity: 
It was simply that their minds were half stunned by 
the news of defeatsandnot thinking for a moment to 
blame themselvesor even not thinking to attribute 
the defeats to mere numbers and skillthey were 
savagely eager to fasten it upon something near enough 
at hand for the operation of vengeance. 
Coleman perceived that the dragomanall his former 
plumage gonewas whining and snivelling as he argued 
to a dark-browed crowd that was running beside the 
cavalcade. The groomwho always had been a 
miraculously laconic manwas suddenly launched forth 
garrulously. Thedriversfrom their high seatspalavered 
like mad mendriving with oat hand and gesturing 
with the otherexplaining evidently their own great 
innocence. 
Coleman saw that there was troublebut he only sat 
more stiffly in his saddle. The eternal gabble moved 
him to despise the situation. At any ratethe travellers 
would soon be out of this town and on to a more 
sensible region. 
However he saw the driver of the first carriage suddenly 
pull up boforg a little blackened coffee shop and 
inn. The dragman spurred forward and began wild 
expostulation. The second carriage pulled close behind 
the other. The crowdmurmuring like a Roman mob in 
Nero's timeclosed around them. 
. 
CHAPTER XXI. 
COLEMAN pushed his horse coolly through to the 
dragoman;s side. " What is it ? " he demanded. The 
dragoman was broken-voiced. " These peoplesthey 
say you are Germansall Germansand they are 
angry he wailed. I can do nossing-nossing." 
 Well, tell these men to drive on,said Coleman
tell them theymust drive on.
 They will not drive on,wailed the dragoman
still more loudly. " I can do nossing. They say here 
is place for feed the horse. It is the custom and they 
will note drive on." 
 Make them drive on.
 They will note,shrieked the agonised servitor. 
Coleman looked from the men waving their arms 
and chattering on the box-seats to the men of the 
crowd who also waved their arms and chattered. In 
this throng far to the rear of the fighting armies there 
did not seem to be a single man who was not 
ablebodiedwho had not been free to enlist as a soldier. 
They were of that scurvy behind-the-rear-guard which 
every nation has in degree proportionate to its worth. 
The manhood of Greece had gone to the frontier
leaving at home this rabble of talkersmost of whom 
were armed with rifles for mere pretention. Coleman 
loathed them to the end of his soul. He thought 
them a lot of infants who would like to prove their 
courage upon eleven innocent travellersall but 
unarmedand in this fact he was quick to see a great 
danger to the Wainwright party. One could deal 
with soldiers; soldiers would have been ashamed to 
bait helpless people ; but this rabble-
The fighting blood of the correspondent began to 
boiland he really longed for the privilege to run 
amuck through the multitude. But a look at the 
Wainwrights kept him in his senses. The professor 
had turned pale as a dead man. He sat very stiff and 
still while his wife clung to himhysterically beseeching 
him to do somethingdo somethingalthough 
what he was to do she could not have even imagined. 
Coleman took the dilemma by its beard. He 
dismounted from his horse into the depths of the crowd 
and addressed the Wainwrights. " I suppose we had 
better go into this place and have some coffee while 
the men feed their horses. There is no use in trying 
to make them go on." His manner was fairly 
casualbut they looked at him in glazed horror. " It 
is the only thing to do. This crowd is not nearly so 
bad as they think they are. But we've got to look as 
if we felt confident." He himself had no confidence 
with this angry buzz in his earsbut be felt certain 
that the only correct move was to get everybody as 
quickly as possible within the shelter of the inn. It 
might not be much of a shelter for thembut it was 
better than the carriages in the street. 
The professor and Mrs. Wainwright seemed to be 
considering their carriage as a castleand they looked 
as if their terror had made them physically incapable 
of leaving it. Coleman stood waiting. Behind him 
the clapper-tongued crowd was moving ominously. 
Marjory arose and stepped calmly down to him. 
He thrilled to the end of every nerve. It was as if 
she had said: " I don't think there is great danger
but if there is great dangerwhy * * here I am * 
ready * with you." It conceded everything
admitted everything. It was a surrender without a 
blushand it was only possible in the shadow of the 
crisis when they did not know what the next 
moments might contain for them. As he took her 
hand and she stepped past him he whispered swiftly 
and fiercely in her ear I love you.She did not 
look upbut he felt that in this quick incident they 
had claimed each otheraccepted each other with a 
far deeper meaning and understanding than could be 
possible in a mere drawing-room. She laid her hand 
on his armand with the strength of four men he 
twisted his horse into the making of furious prancing 
side-steps toward the door of the innclanking sidesteps 
which mowed a wide lane through the crowd for 
Marjoryhis Marjory. He was as haughty as a new 
German lieutenantand although he held the fuming 
horse with only his left handhe seemed perfectly 
capable of hurling the animal over a house without 
calling into service the arm which was devoted to 
Marjory. 
It was not an exhibition of coolness such as wins 
applause on the stage when the hero placidly lights a 
cigarette before the mob which is clamouring for his 
death. It wason the contraryan exhibition of 
downright classic disdaina disdain which with the 
highest arrogance declared itself in every glance of his 
eye into the faces about him. " Very good * * 
attack me if you like * * there is nothing to prevent 
it * * you mongrels." Every step of his progress 
was made a renewed insult to them. The very air 
was charged with what this lone man was thinking 
of this threatening crowd. 
His audacity was invincible. They actually made 
way for it as quickly as children would flee from a 
ghost. The horsedancing; with ringing stepswith 
his glistening neck arched toward the iron hand at his 
bitthis powerfulquivering animal was a regular 
engine of destructionand they gave room until Coleman 
halted him -at an exclamation from Marjory. 
 My mother and father.But they were coming 
close behind and Coleman resumed this contemptuous 
journey to the door of the inn. The groomwith his 
new-born tonguewas clattering there to the populace. 
Coleman gave him the horse and passed after the 
Wainwrights into the public room of the inn. He 
was smiling. What simpletons! 
A new actor suddenly appeared in the person of the 
keeper of the inn. He too had a rifle and a prodigious 
belt of cartridgesbut it was plain at once that he had 
elected to be a friend of the worried travellers. A 
large part of the crowd were thinking it necessary to 
enter the inn and pow-wow more. But the innkeeper 
stayed at the door with the dragomanand together 
they vociferously held back the tide. The spirit of 
the mob had subsided to a more reasonable feeling. 
They no longer wished to tear the strangers limb from 
limb on the suspicion that they were Germans. They 
now were frantic to talk as if some inexorable law 
had kept them silent for ten years and this was the 
very moment of their release. Whereastheir simultaneous 
and interpolating orations had throughout 
made noise much like a coal-breaker. 
Coleman led the Wainwrights to a table in a far 
part of the room. They took chairs as if he had commanded 
them. " What an outrage he said jubilantly. 
The apes." He was keeping more than half an eye 
upon the doorbecause he knew that the quick coming 
of the students was important. 
Then suddenly the storm broke in wrath. Something 
had happened in the street. The jabbering crowd at 
the door had turned and were hurrying upon some 
central tumult. The dragoman screamed to Coleman. 
Coleman jumped and grabbed the dragoman. " Tell 
this man to take them somewhere up stairs he cried, 
indicating the Wainwrights with a sweep of his arm. 
The innkeeper seemed to understand sooner than the 
dragoman, and he nodded eagerly. The professor was 
crying: What is itMr. Coleman? What is it ? " 
An instant laterthe correspondent was out in the 
streetbuffeting toward a scuffle. Of course it was 
the students. It appearedafterwardthat those 
seven young menwith their feelings much ruffled
had been making the best of their way toward the 
door of the innwhen a large man in the crowdduring 
a speech which was surely most offensivehad laid 
an arresting hand on the shoulder of Peter Tounley. 
Whereupon the excellent Peter Tounley had hit the 
large man on the jaw in such a swift and skilful manner 
that the large man had gone spinning through a 
group of his countrymen to the hard earthwhere he 
lay holding his face together and howling. Instantly
of coursethere had been a riot. It might well be 
said that even then the affair could have ended in a lot 
of talkingbut in the first place the students did not 
talk modern Greekand in the second place they were 
now past all thought of talking. They regarded this 
affair seriously as a fightand now that they at last 
were in itthey were in it for every pint of blood in 
their bodies. Such a pack of famished wolves had 
never before been let loose upon men armed with 
Gras rifles. 
They all had been expecting the rowand when 
Peter Tounley had found it expedient to knock over 
the manthey had counted it a signal: their arms 
immediately begun to swing out as if they had been 
wound up. It was at this time that Coleman swam 
brutally through the Greeks and joined his countrymen. 
He was more frightened than any of those novices. 
When he saw Peter Tounley overthrow a dreadful 
looking brigand whose belt was full of knivesand who 
-crashed to the ground amid a clang of cartridgeshe 
was appalled by the utter simplicity with which the 
lads were treating the crisis. It was to them no common 
scrimmage at Washurstof coursebut it flashed 
through Coleman's mind that they had not the 
slightegt sense of the size of the thing. He expected 
every instant to see the flash of knives or to hear the 
deafening intonation of a rifle fired against hst ear. It 
seemed to him miraculous that the tragedy was so long 
delayed. 
In the meantirne he was in the affray. He jilted 
one man under the chin with his elbow in a way that 
reeled him off from Peter Tounley's back; a little person 
in thecked clothes he smote between the eyes; he 
recieved a gun-butt emphatically on the aide of the 
neck; he felt hands tearing at him; he kicked the pins 
out from under three men in rapid succession. He 
was always yelling. " Try to get to the innboystry 
to get to the inn. Look outPeter. Take care for his 
knifePeter--" Suddenly he whipped a rifle out of 
the hands of a man and swung itwhistling. He had 
gone stark mad with the others. 
The boy Billydrunk from some blows and bleeding
was already. staggering toward the inn over the clearage 
which the wild Coleman made with the clubbed 
rifle. Tho others follewed as well as they might while 
beating off a discouraged enemy. The remarkable 
innkeeper had barred his windows with strong wood 
shutters. He held the door by the crack for themand 
they stumbled one by on through the portal. Coleman 
did not know why they were not all deadnor did 
he understand the intrepid and generous behaviour of 
the innkeeperbut at any rate he felt that the 
fighting was suspendedand he wanted to see Marjory. 
The innkeeper wasdoing a great pantomime in the 
middle of the darkened roompointing to the outer 
door and then aiming his rifle at it to explain his 
intention of defending them at all costs. Some of the 
students moved to a billiard table and spread themselves 
wearily upon it. Others sank down where they 
stood. Outside the crowd was beginning to roar. 
Coleman's groom crept out from under the little 
Coffee bar and comically saluted his master. The 
dragoman was not present. Coleman felt that he 
must see Marjoryand he made signs to the innkeeper. 
The latter understood quicklyand motioned that 
Coleman should follow him. They passed together 
through a dark hall and up a darker stairwaywhere 
after Coleman stepped out into a sun-lit roomsaying 
loudly: "Ohit's all right. It's all over. Don't worry." 
Three wild people were instantly upon him. " Oh
what was it? What did happen? Is anybody hurt? 
Ohtell usquick!" It seemed at the time that it 
was an avalanche of three of themand it was not 
until later that he recognised that Mrs. Wainwright had 
tumbled the largest number of questions upon him. 
As for Marjoryshe had said nothing until the time 
when she cried: " Oh-he is bleeding-he is bleeding. 
Ohcomequick!" She fairly dragged him out of 
one room into another roomwhere there was a jug of 
water. She wet her handkerchief and softly smote 
his wounds. "Bruises she said, piteously, tearfully. 
Bruises. Ohdear! How they must hurt you.' 
The handkerchief was soon stained crimson. 
When Coleman spoke his voice quavered. " It isn't 
anything. Reallyit isn't anything." He had not 
known of these wonderful woundsbut he almost 
choked in the joy of Marjory's ministry and her half 
coherent exclamations. This proud and beautiful 
girlthis superlative creaturewas reddening her 
handkerchief with his bloodand no word of his could 
have prevented her from thus attending him. He 
could hear the professor and Mrs. Wainwright fussing 
near himtrying to be of use. He would have liked 
to have been able to order them out of the room. 
Marjory's cool fingers on his face and neck had conjured 
within him a vision at an intimacy tnat was even 
sweeter than anything which he had imaginedand he 
longed to pour out to her the bubblingimpassioned 
speech which came to his lips. Butalways doddering 
behind himwere the two old peoplestrenuous to be 
of help to him. 
Suddenly a door opened and a youth appeared
simply red with blood. It was Peter Tounley. His 
first remark was cheerful. "WellI don't suppose 
those people will be any too quick to look for more 
trouble." 
Coleman felt a swift pang because he had forgotten 
to announce the dilapidated state of all the students. 
He had been so submerged by Marjory's tenderness 
that all else had been drowned from his mind. His 
heart beat quickly as he waited for Marjory to leave 
him and rush to Peter Tounley. 
But she did nothing of the sort. " OhPeter she 
cried in distress, and then she turned back to Coleman. 
It was the professor and Mrs. Wainwright who, at last 
finding a field for their kindly ambitions, flung them. 
selves upon Tounley and carried him off to another 
place. Peter was removed, crying: Ohnowlook 
hereprofessorI'm not dying or anything of the sort 
Coleman and Marjory were left alone. He suddenly 
and forcibly took one of her hands and the blood 
stained hankerchief dropped to the floor. 
CHAPTER XXII. 
From below they could hear the thunder of weapons 
and fits upon the door of the inn amid a great 
clamour of. tongues. Sometimes there arose the 
argumtntative howl of the innkeeper. Above this roar
Coleman's quick words sounded in Marjory's ear. 
 I've got to go. I've got to go back to the boys, but 
-I love you.
 Yes go, go,she whispered hastily. " You should 
be therebut-come back." 
He held her close to him. " But you are mineremember 
he said fiercely and sternly. You are 
mine-forever-As I am yours-remember." 
Her eyes half closed. She made intensely solemn 
answer. "Yes." He released her and vphs gone. 
In the glooming coffee room of the inn he found 
the studentsthe dragomanthe groom and the innkeeper 
armed with a motley collection of weapons which 
ranged from the rifle of the innkeeper to the table leg 
in the hands of PeterTounley. The last named young 
student of archeology was in a position of temporary 
leadefship and holding a great pow-bow with the 
innkeeper through the medium of peircing outcries by 
the dragoman. Coleman had not yet undestood why 
none of them had been either stabbed or shot in the 
fight in the steeetbut it seemed to him now that 
affairs were leading toward a crisis of tragedy. He 
thought of the possibilities of having the dragoman go 
to an upper window and harangue the peoplebut he 
saw no chance of success in such a plan. He saw that 
the crowd would merely howl at the dragoman while 
the dragoman howled at the crowd. He then asked 
if there was any other exit from the inn by which 
they could secretly escape. He learned that the door 
into the coffee room was the only door which pierced 
the four great walls. All he could then do was to 
find out from the innkeeper how much of a siege the 
place could standand to this the innkeeper answered 
volubly and with smiles that this hostelry would easily 
endure until the mercurial temper of the crowd had 
darted off in a new direction. It may be curious to 
note here that all of Peter Tounley's impassioned 
communication with the innkeeper had been devoted 
to an endeavour to learn what in the devil was the 
matter with these peopleas a man about to be bitten 
by poisonous snakes shouldfirst of allfuriously 
insist upon learning their exact species before deciding 
upon either his routeif he intended to run awayor 
his weapon if he intended to fight them. 
The innkeeper was evidently convinced that this 
house would withstand the rage of the populaceand 
he was such an unaccountably gallant little chap that 
Coleman trusted entirely to his word. His only fear 
or suspicion was an occasional one as to the purity of 
the dragoman's translation. 
Suddenly there was half a silence on the mob without 
the door. It is inconceivable that it could become 
altogether silentbut it was as near to a rational 
stillness of tongues as it was able. Then there was a 
loud knocking by a single fist and a new voice began 
to spin Greeka voice that was somewhat like the 
rattle of pebbles in a tin box. Then a startling voice 
called out in English. " Are you in thereRufus? " 
Answers came from every English speaking person 
in the room in one great outburst. "Yes." 
 Well, let us in,called Nora Black. " It is all 
right. We've got an officer with us." 
 Open the door,said Coleman with speed. The 
little innkeeper labouriously unfastened the great bars
and when the door finally opened there appeared on 
the threshold Nora Black with Coke and an officer of 
infantryNora's little old companionand Nora's 
dragoman. 
 We saw your carriage in the street,cried the 
queen of comic opera as she swept into the room. 
She was beaming with delight. " What is all the row
anyway? O-o-ohlook at that student's nose. Who 
hit him? And look at Rufus. What have you boys 
been doing?" 
Her little Greek officer of infantry had stopped the 
mob from flowing into the room. Coleman looked 
toward the door at times with some anxiety. Nora
noting itwaved her hand in careless reassurance; 
 Oh, it's, all right. Don't worry about them any 
more. He is perfectly devoted to me. He would 
die there on the threshold if I told him it would 
please me. Speaks splendid French. I found him 
limping along the road and gave him a lift. And now 
do hurry up and tell me exactly what happened.
They all told what had happenedwhile Nora and
Coke listened agape. Cokeby the wayhad quite
floated back to his old position with the students. It
had been easy in the stress of excitement and wonder.
Nobody had any titne to think of the excessively remote 
incidents of the early morning. All minor interests 
were lost in the marvel of the present situation.
Who landed you in the eye, Billie?asked the
awed Coke. " That was a bad one."
 Oh, I don't know,said Billie. " You really
couldn't tell who hit youyou know. It was a football
rush. They had guns and knivesbut they didn't use
'em. I don't know why Jinks! I'm getting pretty
stiff. My face feels as if it were made of tin. Did
they give you people a rowtoo ? "
 No; only talk. That little officer managed them.
Out-talked them, I suppose. Hear him buzz, now.
The Wainwrights came down stairs. Nora Black
went confidently forward to meet them. "You've
added one more to your list of rescuers She cried,
with her glowing, triumphant smile. Miss Black of
the New York Daylight-at your service. How in
the world do you manage to get yourselves into such
dreadful Scrapes? You are the most remarkable people. 
You need a guardian. Whyyou might have all
been killed. How exciting it must seem to be regularly 
of your party." She had shaken cordiaily one of
Mrs. Wainwright's hands without that lady indicating
assent to the proceeding but Mrs. Wainwright had
not felt repulsion. In fact she had had no emotion
springing directly from it. Here again the marvel of
the situation came to deny Mrs. Wainwright the right
to resume a state of mind which had been so painfully
interesting to her a few hours earlier.
The professorColeman and all the students were
talking together. Coke had addressed Coleman civilly
and Coleman had made a civil reply. Peace was upon
them.
Nora slipped her arm lovingly through Marjbry's
arm. "That Rufus! Ohthat Rufus she cried joyously.
I'll give him a good scolding as soon as I
see him alone. I might have foreseen that he would
get you all into trouble. The old stupid ! "
Marjory did not appear to resent anything. " OhI
don't think it was Mr. Coleman's fault at ail she an-
swered calmly. I think it was more the fault of
Peter Tounleypoor boy."
 Well, I'd be glad to believe it, I'd be glad to believe it,
said Nora. "I want Rufus to keep out of
that sort of thingbut he is so hot-headed and foolish."
If she had pointed out her proprietary stamp on Coleman's 
cheek she could not have conveyed what she
wanted with more clearness.
 Oh,said the impassive Marjory I don't think
you need have any doubt as to whose fault it was, if
there were any of our boys at fault. Mr. Coleman
was inside when the fighting commenced, and only ran 
out to help the boys. He had just brought us safely 
through the mob, and, far from being hot-headed and 
foolish, he was utterly cool in manner, impressively 
cool, I thought. I am glad to be able to reassure you 
on these points, for I see that they worry you.
.Yes, they do worry me,said Noradensely. 
They worry me night and day when he is away from 
me." 
 Oh,responded Marjory I have never thought 
of Mr. Coleman as a man that one would worry about 
much. We consider him very self-reliant, able to take 
care of himself under almost any conditions, but then, 
of course, we do not know him at all in the way that 
you know him. I should think that you would find 
that he came off rather better than you expected from 
most of his difficulties. But then, of course, as. I said, 
you know him so much better than we do.Her 
easy indifference was a tacit dismissal of Coleman as 
a topic. 
Noranow thoroughly alertglanced keenly into the 
other girl's facebut it was inscrutable. The actress 
had intended to go careering through a whole circle 
of daring illusions to an intimacy withColemanbut 
herebefore she had really developed her attack
Marjorywith a few conventional and indifferent 
sentencesalmost expressive of boredomhad made 
the subject of Coleman impossible. An effect was left 
upon Nora's mind that Marjory had been extremely 
polite in listening to much nervous talk about a person 
in whom she had no interest. 
The actress was dazed. She did not know how it 
had all been done. Where was the head of this thing? 
And where Was the tail? A fog had mysteriously 
come upon all her brilliant prospects of seeing Marjory 
Wainwright sufferand this fog was the product of 
a kind of magic with which she was not familiar. 
She could not think how to fight it. After being 
simply dubious throughout a long pauseshe in the 
end went into a great rage. She glared furiously at 
Marjorydropped her arm as if it had burned her and 
moved down upon Coleman. She must have reflected 
that at any rate she could make him wriggle. When 
she was come near to himshe called out: "Rufus!" 
In her tone was all the old insolent statement of 
ownership. Coleman might have been a poodle. She 
knew how to call his same in a way that was anything 
less than a public scandal. On this occasion everybody 
looked at him and then went silentas people 
awaiting the startling denouement of a drama. 
 Rufus! She was baring his shoulder to show the 
fieur-de-lis of the criminal. The students gaped. 
Coleman's temper wasif one may be allowed to 
speak in that waybroken loose inside of him. He 
could hardly beeathe; he felt that his body was about 
to explode into a thousand fragments. He simply 
snarled out " What? " Almost at once he saw that 
she had at last goaded him into making a serious 
tactical mistake. It must be admitted that it is only 
when the relations between a man and a woman are 
the relations of wedlockor at least an intimate 
resemblance to itthat the man snarls out " What? " to 
the woman. Mere lovers say " I beg your pardon ? " 
It is only Cupid's finished product that spits like a 
cat. Nora Black had called him like a wifeand he 
had answered like a husband. For his causehis 
manner could not possibly have been worse. He saw 
the professor stare at him in surprise and alarmand 
felt the excitement of the eight students. These 
latter were diabolic in the celerity with which they 
picked out meanings. It was as plain to them as if 
Nora Black had said: " He is my property." 
Coleman would have given his nose to have been 
able to recall that single reverberating word. But he 
saw that the scene was spelling downfall for himand 
he went still more blind and desperate of it. His 
despair made him burn to make matters Worse. He 
did not want to improve anything at all. " What?" 
he demanded. " What do ye' want?" 
Nora was sweetly reproachful. " I left my jacket 
in the carriageand I want you to get it for me." 
 Well, get it for yourself, do you see? Get it for 
yourself.
Now it is plainly to be seen that no one of the 
people listening there had ever heard a man speak 
thus to a woman who was not his wife. Whenever 
they had heard that form of spirited repartee it had 
come from the lips of a husband. Coleman's rude 
speech was to their ears a flat announcement of an 
extraordinary intimacy between Nora Black and the 
correspondent. Any other interpretation would not 
have occurred to them. It was so palpable that it 
greatly distressed them with its arrogance and 
boldness. The professor had blushed. The very 
milkiest word in his mind at the time was the word 
vulgarity. 
Nora Black had won a great battle. It was her 
Agincourt. She had beaten the clever Coleman in a 
way that had left little of him but rags. However
she could have lost it all again if she had shown her 
feeling of elation. At Coleman's rudeness her manner 
indicated a mixture of sadness and embarrassment. 
Her suffering was so plain to the eye that Peter 
Tounley was instantly moved. " Can't I get your 
jacket for youMiss Black? " he asked hastilyand at 
her grateful nod he was off at once. 
Coleman was resolved to improve nothing. His 
overthrow seemed to him to be so complete that he 
could not in any way mend it without a sacrifice of his 
dearest prides. He turned away from them all and 
walked to an isolated corner of the room. He would 
abide no longer with them. He had been made an 
outcast by Nora Blackand he intended to be an 
outcast. Therc was no sense in attempting to stem this 
extraordinary deluge. It was better to acquiesce. 
Then suddenly he was angry with Marjory. He 
did not exactly see why he was angry at Marjory
but he was angry at her nevertheless. He thought 
of how he could revenge himself upon her. He 
decided to take horse with his groom and dragoman and 
proceed forthwith on the roadleaving the jumble as 
it stood. This would pain Marjoryanyhowhe 
hoped. She would feel it deeplyhe hoped. 
Acting upon this planhe went to the professor. 
Wellof course you are all right nowprofessorand 
if you don't mindI would like to leave you-go on 
ahead. I've got a considerable pressure of business 
on my mindand I think I should hurry on to Athens
if you don't mind." 
The professor did not seem to know what to say. 
 Of course, if you wish it-sorry, I'm sure-of course 
it is as you please-but you have been such a power 
in our favour-it seems too bad to lose you-but-if 
you wish it-if you insist-
 Oh, yes, I quite insist,said Colemancalmly. "I 
quite insist. Make your mind easy on that score
professor. I insist." 
Well, Mr. Coleman,stammered the old man. 
 Well, it seems a great pity to lose you-you have 
been such a power in our favour-
Oh, you are now only eight hours from the railway. 
It is very easy. You would not need my assistance, 
even if it were a benefit! 
But-" said the professor. 
Coleman's dragoman came to him then and said: 
There is one man here who says you made to take 
one rifle in the fight and was break his head. He 
was say he wants sunthing for you was break his 
head. He says hurt.
How much does he want?asked Colemanimpatiently. 
The dragoman wrestled then evidently with a desire 
to protect this mine from outside fingers. "I-I think 
two gold piece plenty." 
Take them,said Coleman. It seemed to him 
preposterous that this idiot with a broken head 
should interpolate upon his tragedy. " Afterward 
you and the groom get the three horses and we will 
start for Athens at once." 
For Athens? At once? said Marjory's voice 
in his ear. 
CHAPTER XXIII
Om,said Coleman I was thinking of starting.
Why? asked Marjoryunconcernedly.
Coleman shot her a quick glance. " I believe my
period of usefulness is quite ended he said. with just
a small betrayal of bitter feeling.
It is certainly true that you have had a remark-
able period of usefulness to us said Marjory with a
slow smile, but if it is endedyou should not run
away from us."
Coleman looked at her to see what she could mean.
From many womenthese words would have been
equalunder the circumstancesto a command to stay
but he felt that none might know what impulses
moved the mind behind that beautiful mask. In his
misery he thought to hurt her into an expression of
feeling by a rough speech. " I'm so in love with Nora
Blackyou knowthat I have to be very careful of
myself."
 Oh,said Marjorynever thought of that. I
should think you would have to be careful of yourself." 
She did not seem moved in any way. Coleman
despaired of finding her weak spot. She was a'damantine
this girl. He searched his mind for something
to say which would be still more gross than his last
outbreakbut when he felt that he was about to hit
upon itthe professor interrupted with an agitated
speech to Marjory. "You had better go to your
mothermy childand see that you are all ready to
leave here as soon as the carriages come up."
We have absolutely nothing to make ready,said
Marjorylaughing. " But I'll go and see if mother
needs anything before we start that I can get for her."
She went away without bidding good-bye to Coleman.
The sole maddening impression to him was that the
matter of his going had not been of sufficient importance 
to remain longer than a moment upon her mind.
At the same time he decided that he would goirretrievably go. 
Even then the dragoman entered the room. " We
will pack everything -upon the horse?"
 Everything-yes.
Peter Tounley came afterward. " You are not going to bolt ? "
 Yes, I'm off,answered Coleman recovering him-
self for Peter's benefit. " See you in Athensprobably."
Presently the dragoman announced the readiness of
the horses. Coleman shook hands with the students
and the Professor amid cries of surprise and polite
regret. "What? Goingoldman? Really? What
for ? Ohwait for us. We're off in a few minutes.
Sorry as the devilold boyto' see you go." He
accepted their protestations with a somewhat sour
face. He knew perfectly well that they were thinking
of his departure as something that related to Nora
Black. At the lasthe bowed to the ladies as a
collection. Marjory's answering bow was affable; the
bow of Mrs. Wainwright spoke a resentment for some-
thing; and Nora's bow was triumphant mockery. As 
he swung into the saddle an idea struck him with over 
whelming force. The idea was that he was a fool. 
He was a colossal imbecile. He touched the spur to 
his horse and the animal leaped superblymaking the 
Greeks hasten for safety in all directions. He was off ; 
he could no more return to retract his devious idiocy 
than he could make his horse fly to Athens. What 
was done was done. He could not mend it. And he 
felt like a man that had broken his own heart; 
perverselychildishlystupidly broken his own heart. 
He was sure that Marjory was lost to him. No 
man could be degraded so publicly and resent it so 
crudely and still retain a Marjory. In his abasement 
from his defeat at the hands of Nora Black he had 
performed every imaginable block-headish act and had 
finally climaxed it all by a departure which left the 
tongue of Nora to speak unmolested into the ear of 
Marjory. Nora's victory had been a serious blow to 
his fortunesbut it had not been so serious as his own 
subsequent folly. He had generously muddled his 
own affairs until he could read nothing out of them 
but despair. 
He was in the mood for hatred. He hated many 
people. Nora Black was the principal itembut he 
did not hesitate to detest the professorMrs. Wainwright
Coke and all the students. As for Marjory
he would revenge himself upon her. She had done 
nothing that he defined clearly butat any ratehe 
would take revenge for it. As much as was possible
he would make her suffer. He would convince her 
that he was a tremendous and inexorable person. 
But it came upon his mind that he was powerless in 
all ways. If he hated many people they probably 
would not be even interested in his emotion andas 
for his revenge upon Marjoryit was beyond his 
strength. He was nothing but the complaining victim 
of Nora Black and himself. 
He felt that he would never again see Marjoryand 
while feeling it he began to plan his attitude when 
next they met. He would be very cold and reserved. 
At Agrinion he found that there would be no train 
until the next daybreak. The dragoman was excessively 
annoyed over itbut Coleman did not scold at 
all. As a matter of fact his heart had given a great 
joyus bound. He could not now prevent his being 
overtaken. They were only a few leagues awayand 
while he was waiting for the train they would easily 
cover the distance. If anybody expressed surprise at 
seeing him he could exhibit the logical reasons. 
If there had been a train starting at once he would 
have taken it. His pride would have put up with no 
subterfuge. If the Wainwrights overtook him it was 
because he could not help it. But he was delighted 
that he could not help it. There had been an interposition 
by some specially beneficent fate. He felt 
like whistling. He spent the early half of the night 
in blissful smokestriding the room which the dragoman 
had found for him. His head was full of plans 
and detached impressive scenes in which he figured 
before Marjory. The simple fact that there was no 
train away from Agrinion until the next daybreak had 
wrought a stupendous change in his outlook. He 
unhesitatingly considered it an omen of a good future. 
He was up before the darkness even contained presage 
of coming lightbut near the railway station was 
a little hut where coffee was being served to several 
prospective travellers who had come even earlier to 
the rendezvous. There was no evidence of the Wainwrights. 
Coleman sat in the hut and listened for the rumble 
of wheels. He was suddenly appalled that the Wainwrights 
were going to miss the train. Perhaps they 
had decided against travelling during the night. Perbaps 
this thingand perhaps that thing. The morning 
was very cold. Closely muffled in his cloakhe went 
to the door and stared at where the road was whitening 
out of night. At the station stood a little spectral 
trainand the engine at intervals emitted a longpiercing 
scream which informed the echoing land thatin 
all probabilityit was going to start after a time for 
the south. The Greeks in the coffee room wereof 
coursetalking. 
At last Coleman did hear the sound of hoofs and 
wheels. The three carriages swept up in grand procession. 
The first was laden with students ; in the 
second was the professorthe Greek officerNora 
Black's old lady and other personsall looking marvellously 
unimportant and shelved. It was the third 
carriage at which Coleman stared. At first be 
thought the dim light deceived his visionbut in a 
moment he knew that his first leaping conception of 
the arrangement of the people in this vehicle had 
been perfectly correct. Nora Black and Mrs. Wainwright 
sat side by side on the back seatwhile facing 
them were Coke and Marjory. 
They looked cold but intimate. 
The oddity of the grouping stupefied Coleman. It 
was anarchynaked and unashamed. He could not 
imagine how such changes could have been consummated 
in the short time he had been away from them
but he laid it all to some startling necromancy on the 
part of Nora Blacksome wondrous play which had 
captured them all because of its surpassing skill and 
because they werein the mainrather gullible people. 
He was wrong. The magic had been wrought 
by the unaided foolishness of Mrs. Wainwfight. As 
soon as Nora Black had succeeded in creating an 
effect of intimacy and dependence between herself 
and Colemanthe professor had flatly stated to his 
wife that the presence of Nora Black in the partyin 
the innin the worldwas a thiag that did not meet 
his approval in any way. She should be abolished. 
As for Colemanhe would not defend him. He preferred 
not to talk to him. It made him sad. Coleman at 
least had been very indiscreetvery indiscreet. 
It was a great pity. But as for this blatant woman
the sooner they rid themselves of herthe sooner he 
would feel that all the world was not evil. 
Whereupon Mrs. Wainwright had changed front 
with the speed of light and attacked with horsefoot 
and guns. She failed to seeshe had declaredwhere 
this poorlone girt was in great fault. Of course it 
was probable that she had listened to this snaky. 
tongued Rufus Colemanbut that was ever the mistake 
that women made. Ohcertainly ; the professor 
would like to let Rufus Coleman off scot-free. That 
was the way with men. They defended each other in 
all cases. If wrong were done it was the woman who 
suffered. Nowsince this poor girl was alone far off 
here in GreeceMrs. Wainwright announced that she 
had such full sense of her duty to her sex that her 
conscience would not allow her to scorn and desert a 
sistereven if that sister wasapproximatelythe victim 
of a creature like Rufus Coleman. Perhaps the 
poor thing loved this wretched manalthough it was 
hard to imagine any woman giving her heart to such. 
a monster. 
The professor had then asked with considerable 
spirit for the proofs upon which Mrs. Wainwright 
named Coleman a monsterand had made a wry face 
over her completely conventional reply. He had told 
her categorically his opinion of her erudition in such 
matters. 
But Mrs. Wainwright was not to be deterred from 
an exciting espousal of the cause of her sex. Upon 
the instant that the professor strenuously opposed her 
she becamean apostlean enlighteneduplifted apostle 
to the world on the wrongs of her sex. She had 
come down with this thing as if it were a disease. 
Nothing could stop her. Her husbandher daughter
all influences in other directionshad been overturned 
with a roarand the first thing fully clear to the professor's 
mind had been that his wife was riding affably 
in the carriage with Nora Black. 
Coleman aroused when he heard one of the students 
cry out: " Whythere is Rufus Coleman's dragoman. 
He must be here." A moment later they thronged 
upon him. " Hiold mancaught you again! Where 
did you break to? Glad to catch youold boy. How 
are you making it? Where's your horse?" 
 Sent the horses on to, Athens,said Coleman. 
He had not yet recovered his composureand he was 
glad to find available this commonplace return to their 
exuberant greetings and questions. " Sent them on to 
Athens with the groom." 
In the mean time the engine of the little train was 
screaming to heaven that its intention of starting was 
most serious. The diligencia careered to the station 
platform and unburdened. Coleman had had his 
dragoman place his luggage in a little first-class carriage 
and he defiantly entered it and closed the door. 
He had a sudden return to the old sense of downfall
and with it came the original rebellious desires. However
he hoped that somebody would intrude upon 
him. 
It was Peter Tounley. The student flung open the 
door and then yelled to the distance : " Here's an 
empty one." He clattered into the compartment. 
 Hello, Coleman! Didn't know you were in here! 
At his heels came Nora BlackCoke and Marjory. 
 Oh! they saidwhen they saw the occupant of the 
carriage. " Oh ! " Coleman was furious. He could 
have distributed some of his traps in a way to create 
more roombut he did not move. 
CHAPTER XXIV. 
THERE was a demonstration of the unequalled facilities 
of a European railway carriage for rendering 
unpleasant things almost intolerable. These people 
could find no way to alleviate the poignancy of their 
position. Coleman did not know where to look. 
Every personal mannerism becomes accentuated in a 
European railway carriage. If you glance at a man
your glance defines itself as a stare. If you carefully 
look at nothingyou create for yourself a resemblance 
to all wooden-headed things. A newspaper isthenin 
the nature of a preservativeand Coleman longed for 
a newspaper. 
It was this abominable railway carriage which 
exacted the first display of agitation from Marjory. 
She flushed rosilyand her eyes wavered over the 
cornpartment. Nora Black laughed in a way that 
was a shock to the nerves. Coke seemed very angry
indeedand Peter Tounley was in pitiful distress. 
Everything was acutelypainfully vividbaldpainted 
as glaringly as a grocer's new wagon. It fulfilled 
those traditions which the artists deplore when they 
use their pet phrase on a pictureIt hurts.The 
damnable power of accentuation of the European 
railway carriage seemedto Coleman's amazed mind
to be redoubled and redoubled. 
It was Peter Tounley who seemed to be in the greatest 
agony. He looked at the correspondent beseechingly 
and said: "It's a very cold morningColeman." 
This was an actual appeal in the name of humanity. 
Coleman came squarely. to the front and even 
grinned a little at poor Peter Tounley's misery. 
Yes, it is a cold morning, Peter. I should say it to 
one of the coldest mornings in my recollection.
Peter Tounley had not intended a typical American 
emphasis on the polar conditions which obtained 
in the compartment at this timebut Coleman had 
given the word this meaning. Spontaneously every 
body smiledand at once the tension was relieved. 
But of course the satanic powers of the railway carriage 
could not be altogether set at naught. Of course 
it fell to the lot of Coke to get the seat directly in 
front of Colemanand thusface to facethey were 
doomed to stare at each other. 
Peter Tounley was inspired to begin conventional 
babblein which he took great care to make an appear. 
ance of talking to all in the carriage. " Funny thing 
I never knew these mornings in Greece were so cold. 
I thought the climate here was quite tropical. It 
must have been inconvenient in the ancient times
whenI am toldpeople didn't wear near so manyer-
clothes. ReallyI don't see how they stood it. 
For my partI would like nothing so much as a buffalo 
robe. I suppose when those great sculptors were doing 
their masterpiecesthey had to wear gloves. 
Ever think of that? Funnyisn't it? Aren't you 
coldMarjory ? I am. jingo! Imagine the Spartans 
in ulstersgoing out to meet an enemy in cape-overcoats
and being desired by their mothers to return 
with their ulsters or wrapped in them." 
It was rather hard work for Peter Tounley. Both 
Marjory and Coleman tried to display an interest in 
his laboursand they laughed not at what he saidbut 
because they believed it assisted him. The little train
meanwhilewandered up a great green slopeand the 
day rapidly coloured the land. 
At first Nora Black did not display a militant mood
but as time passed Coleman saw clearly that she was 
considering the advisability of a new attack. She had 
Coleman and Marjory in conjunction and where they 
were unable to escape from her. The opportunities 
were great. To Colemanshe seemed to be gloating 
over the possibilities of making more mischief. She 
was looking at him speculativelyas if considering the 
best place to hit him first. Presently she drawled : 
 Rufus, I wish you would fix my rug about me a little 
better.Coleman saw that this was a beginning. 
Peter Tounley sprang to his feet with speed and enthusiasm. 
 Oh, let me do it for you.He had her 
well muffled in the rug before she could protesteven 
if a protest had been rational. The young man had 
no idea of defending Coleman. He had no knowledge 
of the necessity for it. It had been merely the exercise 
of his habit of amiabilityhis chronic desire to 
see everybody comfortable. His passion in this direction 
was well known in Washurstwhere the students 
had borrowed a phrase from the photographers in order 
to describe him fully in a nickname. They called 
him " Look-pleasant Tounley." This did not in any 
way antagonise his perfect willingness to fight on 
occasions with a singular desperationwhich usually 
has a small stool in every mind where good nature has 
a throne. 
 Oh, thank you very much, Mr. Tounley,said 
Nora Blackwithout gratitude. " Rufus is always so 
lax in these matters." 
I don't know how you know it,said Coleman 
boldlyand he looked her fearlessly in the eye. The 
battle had begun. 
 Oh,responded Noraairily I have had opportunity 
enough to know it, I should think, by this 
time.
 No,said Coleman since I have never paid you 
particular and direct attention, you cannot possibly 
know what I am lax in and what I am not lax in. I 
would be obliged to be of service at any time, Nora, 
but surely you do not consider that you have a right 
to my services superior to any other right.
Nora Black simply went madbut fortunately part 
of her madness was in the form of speechlessness. 
Otherwise there might have been heard something 
approaching to billingsgate. 
Marjory and Peter Tounley turned first hot and then 
coldand looked as if they wanted to fly away; and 
even Cokepenned helplessly in with this unpleasant 
incidentseemed to have a sudden attack of distress. 
The only frigid person was Coleman. He had made 
his declaration of independenceand he saw with glee 
that the victory was complete. Nora Black might 
storm and ragebut he had announced his position in 
an unconventional blunt way which nobody in the 
carriage could fail to understand. He felt somewhat 
like smiling with confidence and defiance in Nora's 
facebut he still had the fear for Marjory. 
Unexpectedlythe fight was all out of Nora Black. 
She had the fury of a woman scornedbut evidently 
she had perceived that all was over and lost. The 
remainder of her wrath dispensed itself in glares which 
Coleman withstood with great composure. 
A strained silence fell upon the group which lasted 
until they arrived at the little port of Mesalonghi
whence they were to take ship for Patras. Coleman 
found himself wondering why he had not gone flatly 
at the great question at a much earlier periodindeed 
at the first moment when the great question began to 
make life exciting for him. He thought that if he 
had charged Nora's guns in the beginning they would 
have turned out to be the same incapable artillery. 
Instead of that he had run away and continued to run 
away until he was actually cornered and made to fight
and his easy victory had defined him as a person 
who hadearlierindulged in much stupidity and 
cowardice. 
Everything had worked out so simplyhis terrors 
had been dispelled so easilythat he probably was led 
to overestimate his success. And it occurred suddenly 
to him. He foresaw a fine occasion to talk privately 
to Marjory when all had boarded the steamer for 
Patras and he resolved to make use of it. This he 
believed would end the strife and conclusively laurel 
him. 
The train finally drew up on a little stone pier and 
some boatmen began to scream like gulls. The 
steamer lay at anchor in the placid blue cove. The 
embarkation was chaotic in the Oriental fashion and 
there was the customary misery which was only relieved 
when the travellers had set foot on the deck of 
the steamer. Coleman did not devote any premature 
attention to finding Marjorybut when the steamer 
was fairly out on the calm waters of the Gulf of Corinth
he saw her pacing to and fro with Peter Tounley. 
At first he lurked in the distance waiting for an opportunity
but ultimately he decided to make his own 
opportunity. He approached them. "Marjorywould 
you let me speak to you alone for a few moments? 
You won't mindwill youPeter? " 
 Oh, no, certainly not,said Peter Tounley. 
Of course. It is not some dreadful revelation, is 
it? said Marjorybantering him coolly. 
 No,answered Colemanabstractedly. He was 
thinking of what he was going to say. Peter Tounley 
vanished around the corner of a deck-house and Marjory 
and Coleman began to pace to and fro even as 
Marjory and Peter Tounley had done. Coleman had 
thought to speak his mind frankly and once for alland 
on the train he had invented many clear expressions 
of his feeling. It did not appear that he had forgotten 
them. It seemedmorethat they had become entangled 
in his mind in such a way that he could not 
unravel the end of his discourse. 
In the pauseMarjory began to speak in admiration 
of the scenery. " I never imagined that Greece was so 
full of mountains. One reads so much of the Attic 
Plainsbut aren't these mountains royal? They look 
so rugged and coldwhereas the bay is absolutely as 
blue as the old descriptions of a summer sea." 
 I wanted to speak to you about Nora Black,said 
Coleman. 
Nora Black? Why?said Marjorylifting her eyebrows. 
You know well enough said Coleman, in a head. 
long fashion. You must knowyou must have seen 
it. She knows I care for you and she wants to stop it. 
And she has no right to-to interfere. She is a fiend
a perfect fiend. She is trying to make you feel that I 
care for her." 
 And don't you care for her ? asked Marjory. 
No,said Colemanvehemently. " I don't care 
for her at all." 
 Very well,answered Marjorysimply. " I believe 
you." She managed to give the words the effect of a 
mere announcement that she believed him and it was 
in no way plain that she was glad or that she esteemed 
the matter as being of consequence. 
He scowled at her in dark resentment. " You mean 
by thatI supposethat you don't believe me ? " 
 Oh,answered Marjorywearily I believe you. 
I said so. Don't talk about it any more.
Then,said Colemanslowly you mean that you 
do not care whether I'm telling the truth or not?
 Why, of course I care,she said. " Lying is not 
nice." 
He did not knowapparentlyexactly how to deal 
with her mannerwhich was actually so pliable that-it 
was marbleif one may speak in that way. He looked
ruefully at the sea. He had expected a far easier
time. " Well-" he began.
 Really,interrupted Marjory this is something
which I do not care to discuss. I would rather you
would not speak to me at all about it. It seems too
-too-bad. I can readily give you my word that I
believe you, but I would prefer you not to try to talk
to me about it or-anything of that sort. Mother!
Mrs. Wainwright was hovering anxiously in the
vicinityand she now bore down rapidly upon the
pair. "You are very nearly to Patras she said 
reproachfully to her daughter, as if the fact had some
fault of Marjory's concealed in it. She in no way ac-
knowledged the presence of Coleman.
Ohare we ? " cried Marjory.
Yes,said Mrs. Wainwright. " We are."
She stood waiting as if she expected Marjory to in-
stantly quit Coleman. The girl wavered a moment
and then followed her mother. " Good-bye." she said.
I hope we may see you again in Athens.It was a
command to him to travel alone with his servant on
the long railway journey from Patras to Athens. It
was a dismissal of a casual acquaintance given so
graciously that it stung him to the depths of his pride.
He bowed his adieu and his thanks. When the yelling
boatmen came againhe and his man proceeded
to the shore in an early boat without looking in any
way after the welfare of the others.
At the trainthe party split into three sections.
Coleman and his man had one compartmentNora
Black and her squad had anotherand the Wainwrights
and students occupied two more.
The little officer was still in tow of Nora Black.
He was very enthusiastic. In French she directed
him to remain silentbut he did not appear to understand.
 You tell him,she then said to her dragoman
 to sit in a corner and not to speak until I tell
him to, or I won't have him in here.She seemed
anxious to unburden herself to the old lady companion.
 Do you know,she said that girl has a
nerve like steel. I tried to break it there in that inn,
but I couldn't budge her. If I am going to have her
beaten I must prove myself to be a very, very artful
person.
 Why did you try to break her nerve ? asked the
old ladyyawning. "Why do you want to have her
beaten ? "
 Because I do, old stupid,answered Nora. " You
should have heard the things I said to her."
About what?
 About Coleman. Can't you understand anything
at all?
 And why should you say anything about Coleman
to her?queried the old ladystill hopelessly befogged.
 Because,cried Noradarting a look of wrath at
her companion I want to prevent that marriage.
She had been betrayed into this avowal by the singularly
opaque mind of the old lady. The latter at once
sat erect. - " Ohho she said, as if a ray of light had
been let into her head. Ohho. So that's itis it ? "
Yes, that's it, rejoined Nora, shortly.
The old lady was amazed into a long period of
meditation. At last she spoke depressingly. Well
how are you going to prevent it? Those things can't
be done in these days at all. If they care for each
other-"
Nora burst out furiously. "Don't venture opinions
until you know what you are talking aboutplease.
They don't care for each otherdo you see? She
cares for himbut he don't give a snap of his fingers
for her."
 But,cried the bewildered lady if he don't care
for her, there will be nothing to prevent. If he don't
care for her, he won't ask her to marry him, and so
there won't be anything to prevent.
Nora made a broad gesture of impatience. " Oh
can't you get anything through your head ? Haven't
you seen that the girl has been the only young
woman in that whole party lost up there in the mountains
and that naturally more than half of the men
still think they are in love with her? That's what it
is. Can't you see ? It always happens that way.
Then Coleman comes along and makes a fool of himself
with the others."
The old lady spoke up brightly as if at last feeling
able to contribute something intelligent to the talk.
 Oh, then, he does care for her.
Nora's eyes looked as if their glance might shrivel
the old lady's hair. "Don't I keep telling you that
it is no such thing ? Can't you understand? It is
all glamour! Fascination! Way up there in the
wilderness! Only one even passable woman in sight."
 I don't say that I am so very keen,said the old
ladysomewhat offendedbut I fail to see where I
could improve when first you tell me he don't care
for her, and then you tell me that he does care for
her.
 Glamour,' ' Fascination,'quoted Nora. " Don't
you understand the meaning of the words ? "
 Well,asked the otherdidn't he know herthen
before he came over here ?"
Nora was silent for a timewhile a gloom upon her
face deepened. It had struck her that the theories
for which she protested so energetically might not be 
of such great value. Spoken aloudthey had a sudden 
new flimsiness. Perhaps she had reiterated to herself 
that Coleman was the victim of glamour only because 
she wished it to be true. One theoryhoweverremained 
unshaken. Marjory was an artful rninxwith 
no truth in her. 
She presently felt the necessity of replying to the 
question of her companion. " Oh she said, carelessly, 
I suppose they were acquainted-in a way." 
The old lady was giving the best of her mind to 
the subject. " If that's the case-" she observed
musingly if that's the case, you can't tell what is 
between 'em.
The talk had so slackened that Nora's unfortunate 
Greek admirer felt that here was a good opportunity 
to present himself again to the notice of the actress. 
The means was a smile and a French sentencebut 
his reception would have frightened a man in armour. 
His face blanched with horror at the stormhe had 
invokedand he dropped limply back as if some one 
had shot him. "You tell this little snipe to let me 
alone! " cried Norato the dragoman. " If he dares 
to come around me with any more of those Parisian 
dude speechesI-I don't know what I'll do! I 
won't have itI say." The impression upon the 
dragoman was hardly less in effect. He looked with 
bulging eyes at Noraand then began to stammer at 
the officer. The latter's voice could sometimes be 
heard in awed whispers for the more elaborate explanation 
of some detail of the tragedy. Afterwardhe 
remained meek and silent in his cornerbarely more 
than a shadowlike the proverbial husband of imperious 
beauty. 
Well,said the old ladyafter a long and thoughtful 
pause I don't know, I'm sure, but it seems to me 
that if Rufus Coleman really cares for that girl, there 
isn't much use in trying to stop him from getting her. 
He isn't that kind of a man.
 For heaven's sake, will you stop assuming that he 
does care for her ? demanded Norabreathlessly. 
And I don't see,continued the old ladywhat 
you want to prevent him for, anyhow.
CHAPTER XXV. 
 I FEEL in this radiant atmosphere that there could 
be no such thing as war-men striving together in 
black and passionate hatred.The professor's words 
were for the benefit of his wife and daughter.He 
was viewing the sky-blue waters of the Gulf of Corinth 
with its background of mountains that in the sunshine 
were touched here and there with a copperish glare. 
The train was slowly sweeping along the southern 
shore. " It is strange to think of those men fighting 
up there in the north. And it is strange to think
that we ourselves are but just returning from it."
 I cannot begin to realise it yet,said Mrs. Wain-
wrightin a high voice.
 Quite so,responded the professorreflectively.
I do not suppose any of us will realise it fully
for some time. It is altogether too odd, too very
odd.
To think of it!cried Mrs. WainWright. "To
think of it! Supposing those dreadful Albanians or
those awful men from the Greek mountains had
caught us! Whyyears from now I'll wake up in the
night and think of it! "
The professor mused. " Strange that we cannot
feel it strongly now. My logic tells me to be aghast
that we ever got into such a placebut my nerves at
present refuse to thrill. I am very much afraid that
this singular apathy of ours has led us to be unjust to
poor Coleman."
Here Mrs. Wainwright objected. " Poor Coleman!
I don't see why you call him poor Coleman.
 Well,answered the professorslowly I am in
doubt about our behaviour. It-
 Oh,cried the wifegleefully in doubt about
our behaviour! I'm in doubt about his behaviour.
 So, then, you do have a doubt. of his behaviour?
 Oh, no,responded Mrs. Wainwrighthastily
 not about its badness. What I meant to say was
that in the face of his outrageous conduct with that-
that woman, it is curious that you should worry
about our behaviour. It surprises me, Harrison.
The professor was wagging his head sadly. " I
don't know I don't know It seems hard to
judge * * I hesitate to-"
Mrs. Wainwright treated this attitude with disdain.
 It is not hard to judge,she scoffed and I fail to
see why you have any reason for hesitation at all.
Here he brings this woman-- 
The professor got angry. "Nonsense! Nonsense!
I do not believe that he brought her. If I ever saw a
spectacle of a woman bringing herselfit was then.
You keep chanting that thing like an outright
parrot."
Well,retorted Mrs. WainwrightbridlingI
suppose you imagine that you understand such
things, Men usually think that, but I want to tell
you that you seem to me utterly blind.
 Blind or not, do stop the everlasting reiteration of
that sentence.
Mrs. Wainwright passed into an offended silence
and the professoralso silentlooked with a gradually 
dwindling indignation at the scenery. 
Night was suggested in the sky before the train 
was near to Athens. " My trunks sighed Mrs. 
Wainwright. How glad I will be to get back to my 
trunks! Ohthe dust! Ohthe misery ! Do find 
out when we will get thereHarrison. Maybe the 
train is late." 
Butat lastthey arrived in Athensamid a darkness 
which was confusingandafter no more than the 
common amount of troublethey procured carriages 
and were taken to the hotel. Mrs. Wainwright's 
impulses now dominated the others in the family. 
She had one passion after another. The majority of 
the servants in the hotel pretended that they spoke 
Englishbutin three minutesshe drove them distracted 
with the abundance and violence of her requests. 
It came to pass that in the excitement the 
old couple quite forgot Marjory. It was not until 
Mrs. Wainwrightthen feeling splendidlywas dressed 
for dinnerthat she thought to open Marjory's door 
and go to render a usual motherly supervision of the 
girl's toilet. 
There was no light: there did not seem to be anybody 
in the room. " Marjory ! " called the motherin 
alarm. She listened for a moment and then ran 
hastily out again. " Harrison ! " she cried. " I can't 
find Marjory!" The professor had been tying his 
cravat. He let the loose ends fly. "What?" he 
ejaculatedopening his mouth wide. Then they both 
rushed into Marjory's room. "Marjory!" beseeched 
the old man in a voice which would have invoked the 
grave. 
The answer was from the bed. "Yes?" It was 
lowwearytearful. It was not like Marjory. It was 
dangerously the voice of a hcart-broken woman. 
They hurried forward with outcries. "WhyMarjory! 
Are you illchild? How long have you been lying in 
the dark? Why didn't you call us? Are you ill?" 
 No,answered this changed voice I am not ill. 
I only thought I'd rest for a time. Don't bother.
The professor hastily lit the gas and then father 
and mother turned hurriedly to the bed. In the first 
of the illumination they saw that tears were flowing 
unchecked down Marjory's face. 
The effect.of this grief upon the professor wasin 
partan effect of fear. He seemed afraid to touch it
to go near it. He couldevidentlyonly remain in 
the outskirtsa horrified spectator. The motherhow. 
everflung her arms about her daughter. " OhMarjory! " 
Shetoowas weeping. 
The girl turned her face to the pillow and held out 
a hand of protest. " Don'tmother! Don't !" 
Oh, Marjory! Oh, Marjory!
 Don't, mother. Please go away. Please go 
away. Don't speak at all, I beg of you.
 Oh, Marjory! Oh, Marjory!
 Don't.The girl lifted a face which appalled 
them. It had something entirely new in it. " Please 
go awaymother. I will speak to fatherbut I won't 
-I can't-I can't be pitied." 
Mrs. Wainwright looked at her husband. " Yes 
said the old man, trembling. Go! " She threw up 
her hands in a sorrowing gesture that was not without 
its suggestion that her exclusion would be a mistake. 
She left the room. 
The professor dropped on his knees at the bedside 
and took one of Marjory's hands. His voice dropped 
to its tenderest note. "Wellmy Marjory?" 
She had turned her face again to the pillow. At 
last she answered in muffled tones You know.
Thereafter came a long silence full of sharpened 
pain. It was Marjory who spoke first. "I have 
saved my pridedaddybut-I have-lost-everything 
--else." Even her sudden resumption of the old epithet 
of her childhood was an additional misery to the 
old man. He still said no word. He kneltgripping 
her fingers and staring at the wall. 
 Yes, I have lost~everything-else.
The father gave a low groan. He was thinking 
deeplybitterly. Since one was only a human being
how was one going to protect beloved hearts assailed 
with sinister fury from the inexplicable zenith? In 
this tragedy he felt as helpless as an old grey ape. 
He did not see a possible weapon with which he could 
defend his child from the calamity which was upon 
her. There was no wallno shield which could turn 
this sorrow from the heart of his child. If one of his 
hands loss could have spared herthere would have 
been a sacrifice of his handbut he was potent for 
nothing. He could only groan and stare at the wall. 
He reviewed the past half in fear that he would suddenly 
come upon his error which was now the cause 
of Marjory's tears. He dwelt long upon the fact that 
in Washurst he had refused his consent to Marjory's 
marriage with Colemanbut even now he could not 
say that his judgment was not correct. It was simply 
that the doom of woman's woe was upon Marjory
this ancient woe of the silent tongue and the governed 
willand he could only kneel at the bedside and stare 
at the wall. 
Marjory raised her voice in a laugh. " Did I betray 
myself? Did I become the maiden all forlorn ? Did 
I giggle to show people that I did not care? No-I 
did not-I did not. And it was such a long time
daddy! Ohsuch a long time! I thought we would 
never get here. I thought I would never get where I 
could be alone like thiswhere I could-cry-if I 
wanted to. I am not much of - a crieram Idaddy? 
But this time-this-time-" 
She suddenly drew herself over near to her father 
and looked at him. " OhdaddyI want to tell you 
one thing. just one simple little thing." She waited 
thenand while she waited her father's head went 
lower and lower. " Of courseyou know-I told you 
once. I love him! I love him! Yesprobably he is 
a rascalbutdo you knowI don't think I would 
mind if he was a-an assassin. This morning I sent 
him awaybutdaddyhe didn't want to go at all. 
I know he didn't. This Nora Black is nothing to him. 
I know she is not. I am sure of it. Yes-I am sure 
of it. * * * I never expected to talk this way to any 
living creaturebut-you are so gooddaddy. 
Dear old daddy---" 
She ceasedfor she saw that her father was praying. 
The sight brought to her a new outburst of sobbing
for her sorrow now had dignity and solemnity from 
thebowed white head of her old fatherand she felt 
that her heart was dying amid the pomp of the church. 
It was the last rites being performed at the death-bed. 
Into her ears came some imagining of the low melan. 
choly chant of monks in a gloom. 
Finally her father arose. He kissed her on the 
brow. " Try to sleepdear he said. He turned out 
the gas and left the room. His thought was full of 
chastened emotion. 
But if his thought was full of chastened emotion, it 
received some degree of shock when he arrived in the 
presence of Mrs. Wainwright. Wellwhat is all this 
about ? " she demandedirascibly. " Do you mean to 
say that Marjory is breaking her heart over that man 
Coleman ? It is all your fault-" She was apparently still 
ruffled over her exclusion. 
When the professor interrupted her he did not 
speak with his accustomed spiritbut from something 
novel in his manner she recognised a danger signal. 
 Please do not burst out at it in that way.
Then it Is true?she asked. Her voice was a 
mere awed whisper. 
 It is true,answered the professor. 
Well,she saidafter reflectionI knew it. I 
alway's knew it. If you hadn't been so blind! You 
turned like a weather-cock in your opinions of Coleman. 
You never could keep your opinion about him 
for more than an hour. Nobody could imagine what 
you might think next. And now you see the result 
of it! I warned you! I told you what this Coleman 
was, and if Marjory is suffering now, you have only 
yourself to blame for it. I warned you! 
 If it is my fault,said the professordrearily I 
hope God may forgive me, for here is a great wrong 
to my daughter.
Wellif you had done as I told you-" she began. 
Here the professor revolted. " Ohnowdo not begin 
on that he snarled, peevishly. Do not begin 
on that.
 Anyhow,said Mrs. Wainwrightit is time that 
we should be going down to dinner. Is Marjory coming?  
Noshe is not answered the professor, and I 
do not know as I shall go myself." 
 But you must go. Think how it would look! 
All the students down there dining without us, and 
cutting up capers! You must come.
 Yes,he saiddubiously but who will look after 
Marjory ? 
 She wants to be left alone,announced Mrs. 
Wainwrightas if she was the particular herald of this 
news. " She wants to be left alone." 
 Well, I suppose we may as well go down.
Before they wentthe professor tiptoed into his 
daughter's room. In the darkness he could only see 
her waxen face on the pillowand her two eyes gazing 
fixedly at the ceiling. He did not speakbut immedi. 
ately withdrewclosing the door noiselessly behind 
him. 
CHAPTER XXVI. 
IF the professor and Mrs. Wainwright had descended 
sooner to a lower floor of the hotelthey 
would have found reigning there a form of anarchy. 
The students were in a smoking room which was also 
an entrance hall to the dining roomand because there 
was in the middle of this apartment a fountain containing 
gold fishthey had been moved to license and 
sin. They had all been tubbed and polished and 
brushed and dressed until they were exuberantly beyond 
themselves. The proprietor of the hotel brought 
in his dignity and showed it to thembut they minded 
it no more than if he had been only a common man. 
He drew himself to his height and looked gravely 
at them and they jovially said: " HelloWhiskers." 
American college students are notorious in their country 
for their inclination to scoff at robed and crowned 
authorityandfar from being awed by the dignity of 
the hotel-keeperthey were delighted with it. It was 
something with which to sport. With immeasurable 
impudencethey copied his attitudeandstanding before 
himmade comic speechesalways alluding with 
blinding vividness to his beard. His exit disappointed 
them. He had not remained long under fire. They 
felt that they could have interested themselves with 
him an entire evening. " Come backWhiskers! Oh
come back! " Out in the main hall he made a ges. 
ture of despair to some of his gaping minions and then 
fled to seclusion. 
A formidable majority then decided that Coke was 
a gold fishand that therefore his proper place was in 
the fountain. They carried him to it while he strug. 
gled madly. This quiet room with its crimson rugs 
and gilded mirrors seemed suddenly to have become 
an important apartment in hell. There being as yet 
no traffic in the dining roomthe waiters were all at 
liberty to come to the open doorswhere they stood 
as men turned to stone. To themit was no less than 
incendiarism. 
Cokestanding with one foot on the floor and the 
other on the bottom of the shallow fountainblasphemed 
his comrades in a low tonebut with intention. 
He was certainly desirous of lifting his foot out 
of the waterbut it seemed that all movement to that 
end would have to wait until he had successfully expressed 
his opinions. In the meantimethere was 
heard slow footsteps and the rustle of skirtsand then 
some people entered the smoking room on their way 
to dine. Coke took his foot hastily out of the fountain. 
The faces of the men of the arriving party went 
blankand they turned their cold and pebbly eyes 
straight to the frontwhile the ladiesafter little ex. 
pressions of alarmlooked As if they wanted to run. 
In factthe whole crowd rather bolted from this extraordinary 
scene. 
 There, now,said Coke bitterly to his companions. 
You see? We looked like little schoolboys-
 Oh, never mind, old man,said Peter Tounley. 
We'll forgive you, although you did embarrass us. 
But, above everything, don't drip. Whatever you do, 
don't drip.
The students took this question of dripping and 
played upon it until they would have made quite insane 
anybody but another student. They worked it 
into all manner of formsand hacked and haggled at 
Coke until he was driven to his room to seek other 
apparel. " Be sure and change both legs they told 
him. Remember you can't change one leg without 
changing both legs." 
After Coke's departurethe United States minister 
entered the roomand instantly they were subdued. 
It was not his lofty station-that affected them. There 
are probably few stations that would have at all affectedthem. 
They became subdued because they unfeignedly 
liked the United States minister. They
were suddenly a group of well-bredcorrectly attired 
young men who had not put Coke's foot in the fountain. 
Nor had they desecrated the majesty of the 
hotelkeeper. 
Well, I am delighted,said the ministerlaughing 
as he shook hands with them all. " I was not sure I 
would ever see you again. You are not to be trusted
andgood boys as you areI'll be glad to see you once 
and forever over the boundary of my jurisdiction. 
Leave Greeceyou vagabonds. HoweverI am truly 
delighted to see you all safe." 
 Thank you, sir,they said. 
 How in the world did you get out of it? You 
must be remarkable chaps. I thought you were in a 
hopeless position. I wired and cabled everywhere I 
could, but I could find out nothing.
 A correspondent,said Peter Tounley. " I don't 
know if you have met him. His name is Coleman. 
He found us." 
 Coleman ? asked the ministerquickly. 
 Yes, sir. He found us and brought us out safely.
 Well, glory be to Coleman,exclaimed the minister
after a long sigh of surprise. " Glory be to Cole-
man! I never thought he could do it." 
The students were alert immediately. "Whydid 
you know about itsir? Did he tell you he was coming 
after us ? " 
Of course. He came tome here in Athens. and 
asked where you were. I told him you were in a 
peck of trouble. He acted quietly and somewhat 
queerly,. and said that he would try to look you up. 
He said you were friends of his. I warned him 
against trying it. Yes, I said it was impossible, I 
had no idea that he would really carry the thing out. 
But didn't he tell you anything about this himself?
 No, sir ' answered Peter Tounley. " He never 
said much about it. I think he usually contended 
that it was mainly an accident." 
 It was no accident,said the ministersharply. 
When a man starts out to do a thing and does it, 
you can't say it is an accident.
 I didn't say so, sir,said Peter Tounley diffidently. 
 Quite true, quite true ! You didn't, but-this 
Coleman must be a man! 
 We think so, sir,said be who was called Billie. 
 He certainly brought us through in style.
 But how did he manage it? cried the minister
keenly interested. " How did he do it ? " 
 It is hard to say, sir. But he did it. He met us 
in the dead of night out near Nikopolis-
Near Nikopolis?
Yes, sir. And he hid us in a forest while a fight 
was going on, and then in the morning he brought us 
inside the Greek lines. Oh, there is a lot to tell-
Whereupon they told itor as much as they could 
of it. In the endthe minister said: " Wellwhere are 
the professor and Mrs. Wainwright ? I want you all 
to dine with me to-night. I am dining in the public 
roombut you won't mind that after Epirus." 
 They should be down now, sir,answered a Student. 
People were now coming rapidly to dinner and presently 
the professor and Mrs. Wainwright appeared. 
The old man looked haggard and white. He accepted 
the minister's warm greeting with a strained pathetic 
smile. " Thank you. We are glad to return safely." 
Once at dinner the minister launched immediately 
into the subject of Coleman. " He must be altogether 
a most remarkable man. When he told mevery 
quietlythat he was going to try to rescue youI 
frankly warned him against any such attempt. I 
thought he would merely add one more to a party of 
suffering people. But the. boys tell- me that he did 
actually rescue you." 
Yes, he did,said the professor. " It was a very 
gallant performanceand we are very grateful." 
Of course,spoke Mrs. Wainwrightwe might 
have rescued ourselves. We were on the right road, 
and all we had to do was to keep going on.
 Yes, but I understand-said the minister. " I 
understand he took you into a wood to protect you 
from that fightand generally protected you from all
kinds of trouble. It seems wonderful to menot so 
much because it was done as because it was done by 
the man whosome time agocalmy announced to me 
that he was going to do it. Extraordinary." 
Of course,said Mrs. Wainwright. " Ohof 
course." 
And where is he now? asked the minister suddenly. 
Has he now left you to the mercies of civilisation ? 
There was a moment's curious stillnessand then 
Mrs. Wainwright used that high voice which-the 
students believed-could only come to her when she 
was about to say something peculiarly destructive to 
the sensibilities. " Ohof courseMr. Coleman rendered 
us a great servicebut in his private character 
he is not a man whom we exactly care to associate 
with." 
 Indeedsaid the minister staring. Then he 
hastily addressed the students. " Wellisn't this a 
comic war? Did you ever imagine war could be like 
this ? " The professor remained looking at his wife 
with an air of stupefactionas if she had opened up to 
him visions of imbecility of which he had not even 
dreamed. The students loyally began to chatter at 
the minister. " Yessirit is a queer war. After all 
their braggingit is funny to hear that they are running 
away with such agility. We thoughtof course
of the old Greek wars." 
Laterthe minister asked them all to his rooms for 
coffee and cigarettesbut the professor and Mrs. 
Wainwright apologetically retired to their own quarters. 
The minister and the students made clouds of smoke
through which sang the eloquent descriptions of late 
adventures. 
The minister had spent days of listening to questions 
from the State Department at Washington as to 
the whereabouts of the Wainwright party. "I suppose 
you know that youare very prominent people inthe 
United States just now ? Your pictures must have 
been in all the papersand there must have been 
columns printed about you. My life here was made 
almost insupportable by your friendswho consistI 
should thinkof about half the population of the 
country. Of course they laid regular siege to the de. 
partment. I am angry at Coleman for only one thing. 
When he cabled the news of your rescue to his news. 
paper from Artahe should have also wired meif only 
to relieve my failing mind. My first news of your 
escape was from Washington-think of that." 
Coleman had us all on his hands at Arta,said 
Peter Tounley. " He was a fairly busy man." 
 I suppose so,said the minister. " By the way 
he asked bluntly, what is wrong with him? What 
did Mrs. Wainwright mean? " 
They were silent for a timebut it seemed plain to 
him that it was not evidence that his question had 
demoralised them. They seemed to be deliberating 
upon the form of answer. Ultimately Peter Tounley 
coughed behind his hand. " You seesir he began, 
there is-wellthere is a woman in the case. Not 
that anybody would care to speak of it excepting to 
you. But that is what is the cause of thingsand then
you seeMrs. Wainwright is-well-" He hesitated 
a moment and then completed his sentence in the 
ingenuous profanity of his age and condition. " She is 
rather an extraordinary old bird." 
 But who is the woman ? 
Whyit is Nora Blaickthe actress." 
Oh,cried the ministerenlightened. " Her 
WhyI saw her here. She was very beautifulbut she 
seemed harmless enough. She was somewhat-erconfident
perhapsbut she did not alarm me. She 
called upon meand I confess I-whyshe seemed 
charming." 
 She's sweet on little Rufus. That's the point,
said an oracular voice. 
 Oh,cried the hostsuddenly. " I remember. She 
asked me where he was. She said she had heard he 
was in Greeceand I told her he had gone knighterranting 
off after you people. I remember now. I 
suppose she posted after him up to Artaeh ? " 
 That's it. And so she asked you where he was? 
Yes." 
 Why, that old flamingo-Mrs. Wainwright insists 
that it was a rendezvous.
Every one exchanged glances and laughed a little. 
 And did you see any actual fighting ? asked the 
minister. 
 No. We only beard it-
Afterwardas they were trooping up to their rooms
Peter Tounley spoke musingly. " Wellit looks to me 
now as if Old Mother Wainwright was just a bad-minded 
old hen." 
 Oh, I don't know. How is one going to tell what 
the truth is ? 
 At any rate, we are sure now that Coleman had 
nothing to do with Nora's debut in Epirus.
They had talked much of Colemanbut in their tones 
there always had been a note of indifference or 
carelessness. This matterwhich to some people was as 
vital and fundamental as existenceremained to others 
who knew of it only a harmless detail of lifewith no 
terrible powersand its significance had faded greatly 
when had ended the close associat.ions of the late adventure. 
After dinner the professor had gone directly to his 
daughter's room. Apparently she had not moved. 
He knelt by the bedside again and took one of her 
hands. She was not weeping. She looked at him 
and smiled through the darkness. " DaddyI would 
like to die she said. I think-yes-I would like to 
die." 
For a long time the old man was silentbut he arose 
at last with a definite abruptness and said hoarsely 
 Wait! 
Mrs. Wainwright was standing before her mirror 
with her elbows thrust out at angles above her head
while her fingers moved in a disarrangement of 'her 
hair. In the glass she saw a reflection of her husband 
coming from Marjory's roomand his face was set 
with some kind of alarming purpose. She turned to 
watch him actuallybut he walked toward the door 
into the corridor and did not in any wise heed her. 
 Harrison! she called. " Where are you going? " 
He turned a troubled face upon herandas if she 
had hailed him in his sleephe vacantly said: 
What ? 
Where are you going?she demanded with increasing 
trepidation. 
He dropped heavily into a chair. "Going?" he 
repeated. 
She was angry. "Yes! Going? Where are you 
going? " 
I am going-he answeredI am going to 
see Rufus Coleman.
Mrs. Wainwright gave voice to a muffled scream. 
 Not about Marjory ? 
Yes,he saidabout Marjory.
It was now Mrs. Wainwright's turn to look at her 
husband with an air of stupefaction as if he had 
opened up to her visions of imbecility of which she 
had not even dreamed. " About Marjory!" she 
gurgled. Then suddenly her wrath flamed out. 
Well, upon my word, Harrison Wainwright, you 
are, of all men in the world, the most silly and stupid. 
You are absolutely beyond belief. Of all projects! 
And what do you think Marjory would have to say of 
it if she knew it ? I suppose you think she would like 
it ? Why, I tell you she would keep her right hand 
in the fire until it was burned off before she would 
allow you to do such a thing.
 She must never know it,responded the professor
in dull misery. 
 Then think of yourself! Think of the shame of 
it! The shame of it ! 
The professor raised his eyes for an ironical glance 
at his wife. " Oh I have thought of the shame 
of it!" 
 And you'll accomplish nothing,cried Mrs. Wainwright. 
 You'll accomplish nothing. He'll only 
laugh at you.
 If he laughs at me, he will laugh at nothing but a 
poor, weak, unworldly old man. It is my duty to go.
Mrs. Wainwright opened her mouth as if she was 
about to shriek. After choking a moment she said: 
 Your duty? Your duty to go and bend the knee to 
that man? Yourduty?
'It is my duty to go,' he repeated humbly. "If 
I can find even one chance for my daughter's happiness 
in a personal sacrifice. He can do no more than 
he can do no more than make me a little sadder." 
His wife evidently understood his humility as a 
tribute to her arguments and a clear indication that 
she had fatally undermined his original intention. 
 Oh, he would have made you sadder,she quoth 
grimly. "No fear! Whyit was the most insane 
idea I ever heard of." 
The professor arose wearily. " WellI must be 
going to this work. It is a thing to have ended 
quickly." There was something almost biblical in his 
manner. 
 Harrison! burst out his wife in amazed lamentation. 
You are not really going to do it? Not 
really!" 
 I am going to do it,he answered. 
 Well, there! ejaculated Mrs. Wainwright to the 
heavens. She wasso to speakprostrate. " Well
there! " 
As the professor passed out of the door she cried 
beseechingly but futilely after him. " Harrison." In 
a mechanical way she turned then back to the mirror 
and resumed the disarrangement of her hair. She addressed 
her image. " Wellof all stupid creatures 
under the sunmen are the very worst! " And her 
image said this to her even as she informed itand afterward 
they stared at each other in a profound and 
tragic reception and acceptance of this great truth. 
Presently she began to consider the advisability of 
going to Marjdry with the whole story. ReallyHarrison 
must not be allowed to go on blundering until 
the whole world heard that Marjory was trying to 
break her heart over that common scamp of a Coleman. 
It seemed to be about time for herMrs. Wainwright
to come into the situation and mend matters. 
CHAPTER XXVIL 
WHEN the professor arrived before Coleman's door
he paused a moment and looked at it. Previously
he could not have imagined that a simple door would 
ever so affect him. Every line of it seemed to express 
cold superiority and disdain. It was only the door of 
a former studentone of his old boyswhomas the 
need arrivedhe had whipped with his satire in the 
class rooms at Washurst until the mental blood had 
comeand all without a conception of his ultimately 
arriving before the door of this boy in the attitude of 
a supplicant. Hewould not say it; Coleman probably 
would not say it; but-they would both know it. A 
single thought of itmade him feel like running away. 
He would never dare to knock on that door. It would 
be too monstrous. And even as he decided that he 
was afraid to knockhe knocked. 
Coleman's voice said; "Come in." The professor 
opened the door. The correspondentwithout a coat
was seated at a paper-littered table. Near his elbow
upon another tablewas a tray from which he had evidently 
dined and also a brandy bottle with several 
recumbent bottles of soda. Although he had so lately 
arrived at the hotel he had contrived to diffuse his 
traps over the room in an organised disarray which 
represented a long and careless occupation if it did 
not represent t'le scene of a scuffle. His pipe was in 
his mouth. 
After a first murmur of surprisehe arose and 
reached in some haste for his coat. " Come inprofessor
come in he cried, wriggling deeper into his 
jacket as he held out his hand. He had laid aside his 
pipe and had also been very successful in flinging a 
newspaper so that it hid the brandy and soda. This 
act was a feat of deference to the professor's well 
known principles. 
Won't you sit downsir ? " said Coleman cordially. 
His quick glance of surprise had been immediately 
suppressed and his manner was now as if the professor's 
call was a common matter. 
 Thank you, Mr. Coleman, I-yes, I will sit down,. 
replied the old man. His hand shook as he laid it on 
the back of the chair and steadied himself down into 
it. " Thank you!" -
Coleman looked at him with a great deal of expectation. 
 Mr. Coleman ! 
Yes, sir.
 I--
He halted then and passed his hand over his face. 
His eyes did not seem to rest once upon Coleman
but they occupied themselves in furtive and frightened 
glances over the room. Coleman could make neither 
head nor tail of the affair. He would not have believed 
any man's statement that the professor could 
act in such an extraordinary fashion. " Yessir he 
said again suggestively. The simple strategy resulted 
in a silence that was actually awkward. Coleman, despite 
his bewilderment, hastened into a preserving 
gossip. I've had a great many cables waiting for 
me for heaven knows- how long and others have been 
arriving in flocks to-night. You have no idea of the 
row in Americaprofessor. Whyeverybody must 
have gone wild over the lost sheep. My paper has 
cabled some things that are evidently for you. For 
instancehere is one that says a new puzzle-game 
called Find the Wainwright Party has had a big success. 
Think of thatwould you." Coleman grinned 
at the professor. " Find the Wainwright Partya 
new puzzle-game." 
The professor had seemed grateful for Coleman's 
tangent off into matters of a light vein. " Yes?" he 
saidalmost eagerly. " Are they selling a game really 
called that?" 
 Yes, really,replied Coleman. " And of course 
you know that-er-wellall the Sunday papers would 
of course have big illustrated articles-full pageswith 
your photographs and general private histories 
pertaining mostly to things which are none of their 
business." 
 Yes, I suppose they would do that,admitted the 
professor. " But I dare say it may not be as bad as 
you suggest." 
 Very like not,said Coleman. " I put it to you 
forcibly so that in the future the blow will not be too 
cruel. They are often a weird lot." 
 Perhaps they can't find anything very bad about 
us.
 Oh, no. And besides the whole episode will probably 
be forgotten by the time you return to the United States.
They talked onin this way slowlystrainedlyuntil 
they each found that the situation would soon become 
insupportable. The professor had come for a distinct 
purpose and Coleman knew it; they could not sit 
there lying at each other forever. Yet when he saw 
the pain deepening in the professor's eyesthe correspondent 
again ordered up his trivialities. " Funny 
thing. My paper has been congratulating meyou 
knowsirin a wholesale fashionand I think-I feel 
sure-that they have been exploiting my name all 
over the country as the Heroic Rescuer. There is no 
sense in trying to stop thembecause they don't care 
whether it is true or not true. All they want is the 
privilege of howling out that their correspondent rescued 
youand they would take that privilege without 
in any ways worrying if I refused my consent. You 
seesir? I wouldn't like you to feel that I was such a 
strident idiot as I doubtless am appearing now before 
the public." 
 No,said the professor absently. It was plain 
that he had been a very slack listener. " I-Mr. Coleman-" 
he began. 
Yes, sir,answered Coleman promptly and gently. 
It was obviously only a recognition of the futility 
of further dallying that was driving the old man onward. 
He knewof coursethat if he was resolved to 
take this stepa longer delay would simply make it 
harder for him. The correspondentleaning forward
was watching him almost breathlessly. 
 Mr. Coleman, I understand-or at least I am led 
to believe-that you-at one time, proposed marriage 
to my daughter? 
The faltering words did not sound as if either man 
had aught to do with them. They were an expression 
by the tragic muse herself. Coleman's jaw fell and he 
looked glassily at the professor. He said: "Yes!" 
But already his blood was leaping as his mind flashed 
everywhere in speculation. 
 I refused my consent to that marriage,said the 
old man more easily. " I do not know if the matter 
has remained important to youbut at any rateI-I 
retract my refusal." 
Suddenly the blank expression left Coleman's face 
and he smiled with sudden intelligenceas if information 
of what the professor had been saying had just 
reached him. In this smile there was a sudden be. 
trayaltooof something keen and bitter which had 
lain hidden in the man's mind. He arose and made a 
step towards the professor and held out his hand. 
Sir, I thank yod from the bottom of my heart!
And they both seemed to note with surprise that 
Coleman's voice had broken. 
The professor had arisen to receive Coleman's hand. 
His nerve was now of iron and he was very formal. 
 I judge from your tone that I have not made a mistake-
somcthing which I feared.
Coleman did not seem to mind the professor's formality. 
 Don't fear anything. Won't you sit down 
again? Will you have a cigar. * * No, I couldn't 
tell you how glad I am. How glad I am. I feel like 
a fool. It--
But the professor fixed him with an Arctic eye and 
bluntly said: " You love her ? " 
The question steadied Coleman at once. He 
looked undauntedly straight into the professor's face. 
He simply said: " I love her! " 
 You love her ? repeated the professor. 
 I love her,repeated Coleman. 
After some seconds of pregnant silencethe 
professor arose. " Wellif she cares to give her life to 
you I will allow itbut I must say that I do not consider 
you nearly good enough. Good-night." He 
smiled faintly as he held out his hand. 
 Good-night, sir,said Coleman. " And I can't 
tellyounow-" 
Mrs. Wainwrightin her room was languishing in a 
chair and applying to her brow a handkerch-ief wet 
with cologne water. Shekept her feverish glarice 
upon the door. Remembering well the manner of her 
husband when he went out she could hardly identify 
him when he came in. Serenitycomposureeven 
self-satisfactionwas written upon him. Hepaid no 
attention to herbut going to a chair sat down with 
a groan of contentment. 
 Well ? cried Mrs. Wainwrightstarting up. 
 Well ? 
 Well-what ? he asked. 
She waved her hand impatiently. " Harrison
don't be absurd. You know perfectly well what I 
mean. It is a pity you couldn't think of the anxiety 
I have been in." She was going to weep. 
Oh, I'll tell you after awhile,he said stretching 
out his legs with the complacency of a rich merchant 
after a successful day. 
No! Tell me now,she implored him. "Can't 
you see I've worried myself nearly to death?" She 
was not going to weepshe was going to wax angry. 
Well, to tell the truth,said the professor with 
considerable pomposity I've arranged it. Didn't 
think I could do it at first, but it turned out 
I Arranged it,' wailed Mrs. Wainwright. " Arranged what? "
It here seemed to strike the professor suddenly
that he was not such a flaming example for 
diplomatists as he might have imagined. " Arranged he
stammered. Arranged ."
 Arranged what? 
 Why, I fixed-I fixed it up.
 Fixed what up? 
It-it-began the professor. Then he swelled
with indignation. " Whycan't you understand anything
at all? I-I fixed it."
 Fixed what? 
 Fixed it. Fixed it with Coleman.
 Fixed what with Coleman?
The professor's wrath now took control of him.
Thunder and lightenin' ! You seem to jump at the
conclusion that I've made some horrible mistake. For
goodness' sakegive me credit for a particle of sense."
 What did you do? she asked in a sepulchral voice.
 Well,said the professorin a burning defiance
 I'll tell you what I did. I went to Coleman and
told him that once-as he of course knew-I had re-
fused his marriage with my daughter, but that now---
 Grrr,said Mrs. Wainwright.
 But that now-continued the professor
 I retracted that refusal.
 Mercy on us! cried Mrs. Wainwrightthrowing
herself back in the chair. " Mercy on us! What
fools men are!"
 Now, wait a minute-
But Mrs. Wainwright began to croon: " Ohif
Marjory should hear of this! Ohif she should hear
of it! just let her. Hear-"
 But she must not,cried the professortigerishly.
just you dare! " And the woman saw before her a
man whose eyes were lit with a flame which almost
expressed a temporary hatred.
The professor had left Coleman so abruptly that
the correspondent found himself murmuring half.
coherent gratitude to the closed door of his room.
Amazement soon began to be mastered by exultation.
He flung himself upon the brandy and soda and nego-
tiated a strong glass. Pacing. the room with nervous
stepshe caught a vision of himself in a tall mirror.
He halted before it. " Wellwell he said. Rufus
you're a grand man. There is not your equal anywhere.
You are a greatboldstrong playerfit to sit
down to a game with the -best." 
A moment later it struck him that he had appropriated 
too much. If the professor had paid him a visit 
and made a wonderful announcementheColeman
had not been the engine of it. And then he enunciated 
clearly something in his mind whicheven in a 
vague formhad been responsible for much of his early 
elation. Marjory herself had compassed this thing. 
With shame he rejected a first wild and preposterous 
idea that she had sent her father to him. He reflected 
that a man who for an instant could conceive 
such a thing was a natural-born idiot. With an equal 
feelinghe rejected also an idea that she could have 
known anything of her father's purpose. If she had 
known of his purposethere would have been no visit. 
Whatthenwas the cause? Coleman soon decided 
that the professor had witnessed some demonstration 
of Marjory's emotion which had been sufficiently 
severe in its character to force him to the extraordinary 
visit. But then this also was wild and preposterous. 
That coldly beautiful goddess would not 
have given a demonstration of emotion over Rufus 
Coleman sufficiently alarming to have forced her 
father on such an errand. That was impossible. No
he was wrong; Marjory even indirectlycould not be 
connected with the visit. As he arrived at this decision
the enthusiasm passed out of him and he wore 
a dolefulmonkish face. 
Well, what, then, was the cause?After eliminating 
Marjory from the discussion waging in his 
mindhe found it hard to hit upon anything rational. 
The only remaining theory was to the effect that the 
professorhaving a very high sense of the correspond. 
ent's help in the escape of the Wainwright partyhad 
decided that the only way to express his gratitude 
was to revoke a certain decision which he now could 
see had been unfair. The retort to this theory seemed 
to be that if the professor had had such a fine conception 
of the services rendered by Colemanhe had had 
ample time to display his appreciation on the road to 
Arta and on the road down from Arta. There was 
no necessity for his waiting until their arrival in Athens. 
It was impossible to concede that the professor's 
emotion could be anew one; if he had it nowhe 
must have had it in far stronger measure directly 
after he had been hauled out of danger. 
Soit may be seen that after Coleman had eliminated 
Marjory from the discussion that was waging in his 
mindhe had practically succeeded in eliminating the 
professor as well. Thishe thoughtmournfullywas 
eliminating with a vengeance. If he dissolved all the 
factors he could hardly proceed. 
The mind of a lover moves in a circleor at least on 
a more circular course than other mindssome of 
which at times even seem to move almost in a straight 
line. PresentlyColeman was at the point where he 
bad startedand he did not pause until he reached 
that theory which asserted that the professor had 
been inspired to his visit by some sight or knowledge 
of Marjory in distress. Of courseColeman was wistfully 
desirous of proving to himself the truth of this 
theory. 
The palpable agitation of the professor during the 
interview seemed to support it. If he had come on 
a mere journey of consciencehe would have hardly 
appeared as a white and trembling oldman. But 
thensaid Colemanhe himself probably exaggerated 
this idea of the professor's appearance. It might have 
been that he was only sour and distressed over the 
performance of a very disagreeable duty. 
The correspondent paced his room and smoked. 
Sometimes he halted at the little table where was the 
brandy and soda. He thought so hard that sometimes 
it seemed that Marjory had been to him to propose 
marriageand at other times it seemed that there had 
been no visit from any one at all. 
A desire to talk to somebody was upon him. He 
strolled down stairs and into the smoking and reading 
roomshoping to see a man he kneweven if it were 
Coke. But the only occupants were two strangers
furiously debating the war. Passing the minister's 
roomColeman saw that there was a light withinand 
he could not forbear knocking. He was bidden to 
enterand opened the door upon the ministercarefully 
reading his Spectator fresh from London. 
He looked up and seemed very glad. "How are 
you?" he cried. "I was tremendously anxious to 
see youdo you know! I looked for you to dine 
with me to-nightbut you were not down?" 
No ; I had a great deal of work.
 Over the Wainwright affair? By the way, I want 
you to accept my personal thanks for that work. In 
a week more I would have gone demented and spent 
the rest of my life in some kind of a cage, shaking 
the bars and howling out State Department messages 
about the Wainwrights. You see, in my territory 
there are no missionaries to get into trouble, and I 
was living a life of undisturbed and innocent calm, 
ridiculing the sentiments of men from Smyrna and 
other interesting towns who maintained that the 
diplomatic service was exciting. However, when the 
Wainwright party got lost, my life at once became 
active. I was all but helpless, too; which was the 
worst of it. I suppose Terry at Constantinople must 
have got grandly stirred up, also. Pity he can't see 
you to thank you for saving him from probably going 
mad. By the way,he addedwhile looking 
keenly at Coleman the Wainwrights don't seem to 
be smothering you with gratitude? 
 Oh, as much as I deserve-sometimes more,
answered Coleman. " My exploit was more or less of 
a fakeyou know. I was between the lines by accident
or through the efforts of that blockhead of a 
dragoman. I didn't intend it. And thenin the 
nightwhen we were waiting in the road because of a 
fightthey almost bunked into us. That's all." 
They tell it better,said the ministerseverely. 
 Especially the youngsters.
Those kids got into a high old fight at a town up 
there beyond Agrinion. Tell you about that, did 
they? I thought not. Clever kids. You have noted 
that there are signs of a few bruises and scratches?
 Yes, but I didn't ask-
 Well, they are from the fight. It seems the people 
took us for Germans, and there was an awful palaver, 
which ended in a proper and handsome shindig. It 
raised the town, I tell you.
The minister sighed in mock despair. " Take these 
people homewill you ? Or at any rateconduct 
them out of the field of my responsibility. Now
they would like Italy immenselyI am sure." 
Coleman laughedand they smoked for a time. 
 That's a charming girl-Miss Wainwright,said the 
ministermusingly. "And what a beauty! It does 
my exiled eyes good to see her. I suppose all those 
youngsters are madly in love with her ? I don't see 
how they could help it." 
 Yes,said Colemanglumly. " More than half of 
them." 
The minister seemed struck with a sudden thought. 
 You ought to try to win that splendid prize yourself. 
The rescuer ! Perseus! What more fitting? 
Coleman answered calmly: "Well * * * I think 
I'll take your advice." 
CHAPTER XXVIII. 
THE next morning Coleman awoke with a sign of a 
resolute decision on his faceas if it had been a 
development of his sleep. He would see Marjory as soon 
as possiblesee her despite any barbed-wire entanglements 
which might be placed in the way by her 
motherwhom he regarded as his strenuous enemy. 
And he would ask Marjory's hand in the presence of 
all Athens if it became necessary. 
He sat a long time at his breakfast in order to see 
the Wainwrights enter the dining roomand as he was 
about to surrender to the will of timethey came in
the professor placid and self-satisfiedMrs. Wainwright 
worried and injured and Marjory coolbeautiful
serene. If there had been any kind of a storm there 
was no trace of it on the white brow of the girl. 
Coleman studied her closely but furtively while his 
mind spun around his circle of speculation. 
Finally he noted the waiter who was observing him 
with a pained air as if it was on the tip of his tongue 
to ask this guest if he was going to remain at breakfast 
forever. Coleman passed out to the reading 
room where upon the table a multitude of great red 
guide books were crushing the fragile magazines of 
London and Paris. On the walls were various 
depressing maps with the name of a tourist agency 
luridly upon themand there were also some pictures 
of hotels with their rates-in francs-printed beneath. 
The room was colddarkemptywith the trail of the 
tourist upon it. 
Coleman went to the picture of a hotel in Corfu 
and stared at it precisely as if he was interested. He 
was standing before it when he heard Marjory's voice 
just without the door. "All right! I'll wait." He 
did not move for the reason that the hunter moves 
not when the unsuspecting deer approaches his hiding 
place. She entered rather quickly and was well 
toward the centre of the room before she perceived 
Coleman. " Oh she said and stopped. Then she 
spoke the immortal sentence, a sentence which, 
curiously enough is common to the drama, to the 
novel, and to life. I thought no one was here." 
She looked as if she was going to retreatbut it would 
have been hard to make such retreat gracefuland 
probably for this reason she stood her ground. 
Coleman immediately moved to a point between 
her and the door. "You are not going to run away 
from meMarjory Wainwright he cried, angrily. 
You at least owe it to me to tell me definitely that 
you don't love me-that you can't love me-" 
She did not face him with all of her old spiritbut 
she faced himand in her answer there was the old 
Marjory. " A most common question. Do you ask 
all your feminine acquaintances that? " 
I mean-he said. "I mean that I love you 
and-" 
Yesterday-no. To-day-yes. To-morrow-who 
knows. Really, you ought to take some steps to 
know your own mind.
 Know my own mind,he retorted in a burst of indignation. 
You mean you ought to take steps to 
know your own mind.
 My own mind! You-Then she halted in 
acute confusion and all her face went pink. She had 
been far quicker than the man to define the scene. 
She lowered her head. Let me pastplease-" 
But Coleman sturdily blocked the way and even 
took one of her struggling hands. "Marjory-" 
And then his brain must have roared with a thousand 
quick sentences for they came tumbling outone 
over the other. * * Her resistance to the grip of his 
fingers grew somewhat feeble. Once she raised her 
eyes in a quick glance at him. * * Then suddenly 
she wilted. She surrenderedshe confessed without 
words. " OhMarjorythank Godthank God-" 
Peter Tounley made a dramatic entrance on the 
gallop. He stoppedpetrified. "Whoo!" he cried. 
My stars! He turned and fled. But Coleman
called after him in a low voiceintense with agitation.
 Come back here, you young scoundrel! Come baok
here I 
Peter returnedlooking very sheepish. " I hadn't
the slightest idea you-"
 Never mind that now. But look here, if you tell
a single soul-particularly those other young 
scoundrels-I'll break-
 I won't, Coleman. Honest, I won't.He was
far more embarrassed than Coleman and almost equally
so with Marjory. He was like a horse tugging at a
tether. "I won'tColeman! Honest!"
 Well, all right, then.Peter escaped.
The professor and his wife were in their sitting room
writing letters. The cablegrams had all been answered
but as the professor intended to prolong his
journey homeward into a month of Paris and London
there remained the arduous duty of telling their
friends at length exactly what had happened. There
was considerable of the lore of olden Greece in the
professor's descriptions of their escapeand in those
of Mrs. Wainwright there was much about the lack of
hair-pins and soap.
Their heads were lowered over their writing when
the door into the corridor opened and shut quickly
and upon looking up they saw in the room a radiant
girla new Marjory. She dropped to her knees by
her father's chair and reached her arms to his neck. 
 Oh, daddy! I'm happy I I'm so happy! 
 Why-what-began the professor stupidly.
 Oh, I am so happy, daddy!
Of course he could not be long in making his conclusion.
The one who could give such joy to Marjory 
was the one who, last night, gave her such grief.
The professor was only a moment in understanding.
He laid his hand tenderly upon her head Bless my
soul he murmured. And so-and so-he-"
At the personal pronounMrs. Wainwright lum-
bered frantically to her feet. " What ? " she shouted.
Coleman ? "
 Yes,answered Marjory. " Coleman." As she
spoke the name her eyes were shot with soft yet
tropic flashes of light.
Mrs. Wainwright dropped suddenly back into her
chair. "Well-of-all-things!"
The professor was stroking his daughter's hair and
although for a time after Mrs. Wainwright's outbreak
there was little saidthe old man and the girl seemed
in gentle communionshe making him feel her happiness
he making her feel his appreciation. Providentially
Mrs. Wainwright had been so stunned by the 
first blow that she was evidently rendered incapable of 
speech. 
 And are you sure you will be happy with him? 
asked her father gently. 
All my life long she answered. 
I am glad! I am glad! " said the fatherbut even 
as he spoke a great sadness came to blend with his 
joy. The hour when he was to give this beautiful 
and beloved life into the keeping of another had been 
heralded by the god of the sexesthe ruthless god 
that devotes itself to the tearing of children from the 
parental arms and casting them amid the mysteries of 
an irretrievable wedlock. The thought filled him 
with solemnity. 
But in the dewy eyes of the girl there was no question. 
The world to her was a land of glowing promise. 
 I am glad,repeated the professor. 
The girl arose from her knees. " I must go away 
and-think all about it she said, smiling. When 
the door of her room closed upon her, the mother 
arose in majesty. 
Harrison Wainwright she declaimed, you are 
not going to allow this monstrous thing! " 
The professor was aroused from a reverie by these 
words. "What monstrous thing ? " he growled. 
 Why, this between Coleman and Marjory.
 Yes,he answered boldly. 
 Harrison! That man who-
The professor crashed his hand down on the table. 
Mary! I will not hear another word of it! 
 Well,said Mrs. Wainwrightsullen and ominous
 time will tell! Time will tell!
When Coleman bad turned from the fleeing Peter 
Tounley again to Marjoryhe found her making the 
preliminary movements of a flight. "What's the 
matter? " he demanded anxiously. 
 Oh, it's too dreadful
 Nonsense,lie retorted stoutly. " Only Peter 
Tounley! He don't count. What of that ? " 
' Ohdear! " She pressed her palm to a burning 
cheek. She gave him a star-likebeseeching glance. 
Let me go now-please." 
 Well,he answeredsomewhat affronted if you 
like--
At the door she turned to look at himand this
glance expressed in its elusive way a score of things
which she had not yet been able to speak. It explained
that she was loth to leave himthat she asked
forgiveness for leaving himthat even for a short absence
she wished to take his image in her eyesthat
he must not bully herthat there was something now
in her heart which frightened herthat she loved him
that she was happy---
When she had goneColeman went to the rooms of
the American minister. A Greek was there who
talked wildly as he waved his cigarette. Coleman
waited in well-concealed impatience for the dvapora-
tion of this man. Once the ministerregarding the
correspondent hurriedlyinterpolated a comment.
 You look very cheerful ? 
 Yes,answered Coleman I've been taking your
advice.
 Oh, ho ! said the minister.
The Greek with the cigarette jawed endlessly.
Coleman began to marvel at the enduring good man-
ners of the ministerwho continued to nod and nod in
polite appreciation of the Greek's haranguewhich
Coleman firmly believedhad no point of interest
whatever. But at last the manafter an effusive farewell
went his way.
 Now,said the ministerwheeling in his chair
tell me all about it."
Coleman aroseand thrusting his hands deep in his
trousers' pocketsbegan to pace the room with long
strides. Hesaid nothingbut kept his eyes on the
floor.
 Can I have a drink ? he askedabruptly pausing.
 What would you like? asked the ministerbenevolently
as he touched the bell.
 A brandy and soda. I'd like it very much. You
see,he saidas he resumed his walk I have no kind
of right to burden you with my affairs, but, to tell the
truth, if I don't get this news off my mind and into
somebody's ear, I'll die. It's this-I asked Marjory
Wainwright to marry me, and-she accepted, and-
that's all.
 Well, I am very glad,cried the ministerarising
and giving his hand. "And as for burdening me with
your affairsno one has a better rightyou know
since you released me from the persecution of Washington
and the friends of the Wainwrights. May good
luck follow you both forever. Youin my opinion
are a veryvery fortunate man. Andfor her part
she has not done too badly."
Seeing that it was important that Coleman should
have his spirits pacified in partthe minister continued:
 Now, I have got to write an official letter, so you
just walk up and down here and use up this surplus
steam. Else you'll explode.
But Coleman was not to be detained. Now that he
had informed the ministerhe must rush off some.
whereanywhereand do-he knew not what.
All right said the minister, laughing. You
have a wilder head than I thought. But look here
he called, as Coleman was making for the door. Am
I to keep this news a secret? "
Coleman with his hand on the knobturned im.
pressively. He spoke with deliberation. " As far as
I am concernedI would be glad to see a man paint it
in red letterseight feet highon the front of the king's
palace."
The ministerleft alonewrote steadily and did not
even look up when Peter Tounley and two others
enteredin response to his cry of permission. How
everhe presently found time to speak over his
shoulder to them. "Hear the news?"
No, sir,they answered.
 Well, be good boys, now, and read the papers and
look at pictures until I finish this letter. Then I will tell you.
They surveyed him keenly. They evidently
judged that the news was worth hearingbutobediently
they said nothing. Ultimately the minister
affixed a rapid signature to the letterand turning
looked at the students with a smile.
 Haven't heard the news, eh ?
No, Sir.
Well, Marjory Wainwright is engaged to marry
Coleman.
The minister was amazed to see the effect of this
announcement upon the three students. He had expected
the crows and cackles of rather absurd
merriment with which unbearded youth often greets
such news. But there was no crow or cackle. One
young man blushed scarlet and looked guiltily at the
floor. With a great effort he muttered: " Shes too
good for him." Another student had turned ghastly
pate and was staring. It was Peter Tounley who relieved 
the minister's mindfor upon that young man's
face was a broad jack-o-lantern grinand the minister
saw thatat any ratehe had not made a complete
massacre.
Peter Tounley said triumphantly: "I knew it ! "
The minister was anxious over the havoc he had
wrought with the two other studentsbut slowly the
colour abated in one face and grew in the other. To
give them opportunitythe minister talked busily to
Peter Tounley. "And how did you know ityou
young scamp ?"
Peter was jubilant. " Oh-I knew it! I knew it I 
I am very clever." 
The student who had blushed now addressed the 
minister in a slightly strained voice. " Are you positive 
that it is trueMr. Gordner? 
I had it on the best authority replied the minister gravely. 
The student who had turned pale said: Ohit's 
trueof course." 
 Well,said crudely the one who had blushed
she's a great sight too good for Coleman or anybody 
like him. That's all I've got to say." 
 Oh, Coleman is a good fellow,said Peter Tounley
reproachfully. " You've no right to say that-exactly. 
You don't know where you'd. be now if it were not for 
Coleman." 
Theresponse wasfirstan angry gesture. " Oh
don't keep everlasting rubbing that in. For heaven's 
sakelet up. - Supposing I don't. know where I'd be 
now ifit were not for Rufus Coleman? What of it? 
For the rest of my life have I got to--" 
The minister saw. that this was the embittered speech 
of a really defeated youthsoto save sceneshe gently 
ejected the trio. " Theretherenow ! Run along 
home like good boys. I'll be busy until luncheon. 
And I -dare say you won't find Coleman such a bad 
chap."' 
In the corridorone of the students said offensively 
to Peter Tounley : " Sayhow in hell did you find 
out all this so early ? " 
Peter's reply was amiable in tone. " You are a 
damned bleating little kid and you made a holy show 
of yourself before Mr. Gordner. There's where you 
stand. Didn't you see that he turned us out because 
he didn't know but what you were going to blubber 
or something. - you are a sucking pigand if you 
want to know how I find out things go ask the Delphic 
Oracleyou blind ass." 
 You better look out or you may get a punch in 
the eye!,
You take one punch in the general direction of 
my eye, me son,said -Peter cheerfully and I'll 
distribute your remains, over this hotel in a way that will 
cause your, friends years of trouble to collect you. 
Instead of anticipating an attack upon my eye, you 
had much better be engaged in improving your mind, 
which is at present not a fit machine to cope with exciting 
situations. There's Coke! Hello, Coke, hear 
the news? Well, Marjory Wainwright and Rufus 
Coleman , are engaged.. Straight ? Certainly ! Go 
ask the minister.
Coke did not take Peter's word. "Is that so ? " he 
asked the others. 
 So the minister told us,they answeredand then
these twowho seemed so unhappywatched Coke's
face to see if they could not find surprised misery
there. But Coke coolly said: " WellthenI suppose
it's true."
It soon became evident that the students did not
care for each other's society. Peter Tounley was
probably an exceptionbut the others seemed to long
for quiet corners. They were distrusting each other
andin a boyish waythey were even capable of maligant
things. Their excuses for separation were badly
made.
I-I think I'll go for a walk.
 I'm going up stairs to read.
 Well, so long, old man.' So long." There was
no heart to it.
Peter Tounley went to Coleman's doorwhere he
knocked with noisy hilarity. " Come in I " The correspondent
apparently had just come from the street
for his hat was on his head and a light top-coat was on
his back. He was searching hurriedly through some
papers. " Helloyou young devil What are you
doing here ?
Peter's entrance was a somewhat elaborate comedy
which Coleman watched in icy silence. Peter after a
longand impudent pantomime halted abruptly and
fixing Coleman with his eye demanded: "Well?"
Well-what?.said Colemanbristling a trifle.
 Is it true ?
 Is what true ?
 Is it true? Peter was extremely solemn.
 Say, me bucko,said Coleman suddenly if
you've. come up here to twist the beard of the patriarch,
don't you think you are running a chance? 
All right. I'll be good,said Peterand he sat on
the bed. " But-is it true?
 Is what true? 
 What the whole hotel is saying.
] "I haven't heard the hotel making any remarks
lately. Been talking to the other buildingsI sup-
pose."
Well, I want to tell you that everybody knows
that you and Marjory have done gone and got 
yourselves engaged,said Peter bluntly.
And well? asked Coleman imperturbably.
 Oh, nothing,replied Peterwaving his hand.
 Only-I thought it might interest you.
Coleman was silent for some time. He fingered his
papers. At last he burst out joyously. "And so
they know it alreadydo they? Well-damn them-
let them know it. But you didn't tell them yourself ? "
 I ! quoth Peter wrathfully. " No! The minister told us."
Then Coleman was again silent for a time and Peter
Tounley sat on the. bed reflectively looking at the
ceiling. " Funny thingMarjory 'way over here in
Greeceand then you happening over here the way
you did."
 It isn't funny at all.
 Why isn't it ? 
 Because,said Coleman impressively that is
why I came to Greece. It was all planned. See?
Whirroo,exclaimed Peter. "This here is
magic."
 No magic at all.Coleman displayed some complacence.
 No magic at all. just pure, plain--
whatever you choose to call it.
 Holy smoke,said Peteradmiring the situation.
Why, this is plum romance, Coleman. I'm blowed
if it isn't.
Coleman was grinning with delight. He took a
fresh cigar and his bright eyes looked at Peter through
the smoke.Seems like it, don't it? Yes. Regular
romance. Have a drink, my boy, just to celebrate
my good luck. And be patient if I talk a great deal
of my-my-future. My head spins with it.He
arose to pace the room flinging out bis arms in a great
gesture. " God! When I think yesterday was not
like to-day I wonder how I stood it." There was a
knock at the door and a waiter left a note in Coleman's hand
Dear Ruf us:-We are going for a drive this afternoon 
at three, and mother wishes you to come, if you.
care to. I too wish it, if you care to. Yours,
MARJORY."
With a radiant faceColeman gave the note a little
crackling flourish in the air. " Ohyou don't know
what life iskid."
 S-steady the Blues,said Peter Tounley seriously.
You'll lose your head if you don't watch out."
 Not Icried Coleman with irritation. " But a
man must turn loose some timesmustn't he?"
When the fourstudents had separated in the corri-
dorCoke had posted at once to Nora Black's sitting
room. His entrance was somewhat precipitatebut
he cooled down almost at oncefor he reflected that
he was not bearing good news. He ended by perching
in awkward fashion on the brink of his chair and
fumbling his hat uneasily. Nora floated to him in a
cloud of a white dressing gown. She gave him
a plump hand. "Wellyoungman? "she saidwith a
glowing smile. She took a chairand the stuff of her
gown fell in curves over the arms of it.
Coke looked hot and botheredas if he could have
more than half wanted to retract his visit. " I-aw-
we haven't seen much of you lately he began, sparing.
He had expected to tell his news at once.
No,said Noralanguidly. " I have been resting
after that horrible journey-that horrible journey.
Deardear! Nothingwill ever induce me to leave
LondonNew York and Paris. I am at home there.
But here I Whyit is worse than living in Brooklyn.
And that journey into the wilds! No. no; not for
me! "
 I suppose we'll all be glad to get home,said
Cokeaimlessly.
At the moment a waiter entered the room and began 
to lay the table for luncheon. He kept open the
door to the corridorand he had the luncheon at a
point just outside the door. His excursions to the
trays were flying onesso thatas far as Coke's purpose
was concernedthe waiter was always in the
room. MoreoverCoke was obligednaturallyto depart
at once. He had bungled everything.
As he arose he whispered hastily: " Does this
waiter understand English ? "
Yes,answered Nora. "Why?"
Because I have something to tell you-important.
What is it? whispered Noraeagerly.
He leaned toward her and replied: " Marjory 
Wainwright and Coleman are engaged."
To his unfeigned astonishmentNora Black burst
into peals of silvery laughter Oh, indeed? And
so this is your tragic story, poor, innocent lambkin?
And what did you expect? That I would faint?-
 I thought-I don't know-murmured Coke in
confusion.
Nora became suddenly business-like. " But how do
you know? Are you sure? Who told you? Anyhow
stay to luncheon. Do-like a good boy. Oh
you must."
Coke dropped again into his chair. He studied her
in some wonder. " I thought you'd be surprised
he said, ingenuously.
Ohyou diddid you ? Wellyou see I'm not.
And now tell me all about it."
There's really nothing to tell but the plain fact.
Some of the boys dropped in at the minister's
rooms a little while ago, and, he told them of it. 
That's all.
Wellhow did he know? 
I am sure I can't tell you. Got it first hand, I 
suppose. He likes Coleman, and Coleman is always 
hanging up there.
 Oh, perhaps Coleman was lying,said Nora 
easily. Then suddenly her face brightened and she 
spoke with animation. " OhI haven't told you how 
my little Greek officer has turned out. Have I? 
No? Wellit is simply lovely. Do you knowhe belongs 
to one of the best families in Athens? Hedoes. 
And they're rich-rich as can be. My courier tells 
me that the marble palace where they live is enough 
to blind youand that if titles hadn't gone out of 
style-or something-here in Greecemy little officer 
would be a prince! Think of that! The courier 
didn't know it until we got to Athensand the little 
officer-the prince-gave me his cardof course. One 
of the oldestnoblest and richest families in Greece. 
Think of that! There I thought he was only a 
bothersome little officer who came in handy at times
and there he turns out to be a prince. I could hardly 
keep myself from rushing right off to find him and 
apologise to him for the way I treated him. It was 
awful! And-" added the fair Norapensivelyif 
he does meet me in Paris, I'll make him wear that 
title down to a shred, you can bet. What's the good 
of having a title unless you make it work?
CHAPTER XXIX. 
COKE did not stay to luncheon with Nora Black. 
He went away saying to himself either that girl 
don't care a straw for Coleman or she has got a heart 
absolutely of flintor she is the greatest actress on 
earth or-there is some other reason." 
At his departureNora turned and called into an 
adjoining room. " Maude I " The voice of her companion 
and friend answered her peevishly. " What ?" 
Don't bother me. I'm reading.
 Well, anyhow, luncheon is ready, so you will have 
to stir your precious self,responded Nora. " You're 
lazy." 
 I don't want any luncheon. Don't bother me. 
I've got a headache.
 Well, if you don't come out, you'll miss the news. 
That's all I've got to say.
There was a rustle in the adjoining roomand 
immediately the companion appearedseeming much 
annoyed but curious. " Wellwhat is it ? " 
 Rufus Coleman is engaged to be married to that
Wainwright girl, after all.
 Well I declare! ejaculated the little old lady.
 Well I declare.She meditated for a moment
and then continued in a tone of satisfaction. " I told
you that you couldn't stop that man Coleman if he
had feally made up his mind to-"
 You're a fool,said Norapleasantly.
 Why? said the old lady.
Because you are. Don't talk to me about it. I
want to think of Marco."
 'Marco,'quoted the old lady startled.
The prince. The prince. Can't you understand?
I mean the prince.
 ' Marco!'again quoted the old ladyunder her 
breath.
 Yes, 'Marco,'cried Norabelligerently. " 'Marco'
Do you object to the name? What's the matter with
youanyhow?" 
 Well,rejoined the othernodding her head wisely
he may be a prince, but I've always heard that
these continental titles are no good in comparison to
the English titles.
Yes, but who told you so, eh? demanded Nora
noisily. She herself answered the question. " The
English! "
 Anyhow, that little marquis who tagged after you
in London is a much bigger man in every way, I'll
bet, than this little prince of yours.
 But-good heavens-he didn't mean it. Why, he
was only one of the regular rounders. But Marco, he
is serious I He means it. He'd go through fire and
water for me and be glad of the chance.
 Well,proclaimed the old lady if you are not
the strangest woman in the world, I'd like to know!
Here I thought-
What did you think?demanded Norasuspisciously.
 I thought that Coleman---
Bosh!interruptedthe graceful Nora. "I tell
you whatMaude; you'd better try to think as little
as possible. It will suit your style of beauty better.
And above alldon't think of my affairs. I myself
am taking pains not to think of them. It's easier."
Mrs. Wainwrightwith no spirit of intention what.
everhad sit about readjusting her opinions. It is
certain that she was unconscious of any evolution. If
some one had said to her that she was surrendering to
the inevitableshe would have been immediately on
her guardand would have opposed forever all suggestions
of a match between Marjory and Coleman. On 
the other handif some one had said to her that her 
daughter was going to marry a human serpentand 
that there were people in Athens who would be glad 
to explain his treacherous charactershe would have 
haughtily scorned the tale-bearing and would have 
gone with more haste into the professor's way of 
thinking. In factshe was in process of undermining 
herself.and the work could have been. retarded or 
advanced by any irresponsiblegossipy tongue. 
The professorfrom the depths of his experience 
with herarranged a course of conduct. " If I just 
leave her to herself she will come around all right
but if I go 'striking while the iron is hot' or any of 
those thingsI'll bungle it surely." 
As they were making ready to go down to luncheon
Mrs. Wainwright made her speech which first indicated 
a changing mind. " Wellwhat will bewill be 
she murmured with a prolonged sigh of resignation. 
What will bewill be. Girls are very headstrong in 
these daysand there is nothing much to be done with 
them. They go their own roads. It wasn't so in my 
girlhood. - We were obliged to pay attention to our 
mothers wishes." 
 I did not notice that you paid much attention to 
your mother's wishes when you married me,remarked 
the professor. " In factI thought-" 
 That was another thing,retorted Mrs. Wainwright 
with severity. " You were a steady young man 
who had taken the highest honours all through your 
college courseand my mother's sole objection was 
that we were too hasty. She thought we -ought to 
wait until you had a penny to bless yourself with
and I can see now where she was quite right." 
 Well, you married me, anyhow,said the professor
victoriously. 
Mrs. Wainwright allowed her husband's retort to 
pass over her thoughtful mood. " They say * * they 
say Rufus Coleman makes as much as fifteen thousand 
dollars a year. That's more than three times your income 
* * I don't know. * * It all depends on whether 
they try to save or not. His manner of life isno 
doubtvery luxurious. I don't suppose he knows 
how to economise at all. That kind of a man usually 
doesn't. And thenin the newspaper world positions 
are so very precarious. Men may have valuable positions 
one minute and be penniless in the street the 
next minute. It isn't as if he had any real income
and of course he has no real ability. If he was suddenly 
thrown out of his positiongoodness knows what 
would become of him. Still stillfifteen thousand 
dollars a year is a big incomewhile it lasts. I 
suppose he is very extravagant. That kind of a man 
usually is. And I wouldn't be surprised if he was 
heavily in debt; very heavily in debt. Still * * if 
Marjory has set her heart there is nothing to be done
I suppose. It wouldn't have happened if you had 
been as wise as you thought you were. * * I suppose 
he thinks I have been very rude to him. Wellsome 
times I wasn't nearly so rude as I felt like being.
Feeling as I didI could hardly be very amiable. * *
Of course this drive this afternoon was all your affair
and Marjory's. Butof courseI shall be nice to him."
 And what of all this Nora Black business? asked
the professorwitha display of valourbut really with
much trepidation.
 She is a hussy,responded Mrs. Wainwright with
energy. " Her conversation in the carriage on the
way down to Agrinion sickened me! "
 I really believe that her plan was simply to break
everything off between Marjory and Coleman,said
the professor and I don't believe she had any-grounds
for all that appearance of owning Coleman and the
rest of it.
 Of course she didn'tassented Mrs. Wainwright.
The vicious thing! "
 On the other hand,said the professor there
might be some truth in it.
 I don't think so,said Mrs. Wainwright seriously.
I don't believe a word of it."
 You do not mean to say that you think Coleman
a model man ? demanded the professor.
Not at all! Not at all!she hastily answered.
 But * * one doesn't look for model men these days.
'Who told you he made fifteen thousand a year?
asked the professor.
It was Peter Tounley this morning. We were
talking upstairs after breakfastand he remarked that
he if could make fifteen thousanda year: like Coleman
he'd-I've forgotten what-some fanciful thing."
 I doubt if it is true,muttered the old man wagging his head.
Of course it's true,said his wife emphatically.
 Peter Tounley says everybody knows it.
Well * anyhow * money is not everything."
But it's a. great dealyou know well enough. You
know you are always speaking of poverty as an evil
as a grand resultanta collaboration of many lesser
evils. Wellthen?
 But,began the professor meeklywhen I say
that I mean-"
 Well, money is money and poverty is poverty,
interrupted his wife. " You don't have to be very
learned to know that."
I do not say that Coleman has not a very nice
thing of it, but I must say it is hard to think of his
getting any such sum, as you mention.
 Isn't he known as the most brilliant journalist in
New York?she demanded harshly.
 Y-yes, as long as it lasts, but then one never
knows when he will be out in the street penniless.
Of course he has no particular ability which would
be marketable if he suddenly lost his present employment.
Of course it is not as if he was a really talented young man.
He might not be able to make his way at all in any new direction.
 I don't know about that,said Mrs. Wainwright
in reflective protestation. " I don't know about that.
I think he would."
 I thought you said a moment ago-The professor
spoke with an air of puzzled hesitancy. "I
thought you said a moment ago that he wouldn't succeed 
in anything but journalism."
Mrs. Wainwright swam over the situation with a
fine tranquility. " Well-I-I she answered musingly,
if I did say thatI didn't mean it exactly."
 No, I suppose not,spoke the professorand de-
spite the necessity for caution he could not keep out
of his voice a faint note of annoyance.
 Of course,continued the wife Rufus Coleman
is known everywhere as a brilliant man, a very brilliant
man, and he even might do well in-in politics or
something of that sort.
 I have a very poor opinion of that kind of a mind
which does well in American politics,said the pro-
fessorspeaking as a collegian but I suppose there
may be something in it.
 Well, at any rate,decided Mrs. Wainwright.
 At any rate-
At that momentMarjory attired for luncheon and
the drive entered from her roomand Mrs. Wainwright
checked the expression of her important conclusion.
Neither father or mother had ever seen her so glowing
with triumphant beautya beauty which would
carry the mind of a spectator far above physical 
appreciation into that realm of poetry where creatures
of light move and are beautiful because they cannot
know pain or a burden. It carried tears to the old
father's eyes. He took her hands. " Don't be too
happymy childdon't be too happy he admonished
her tremulously. It makes me afraid-it makes me
afraid."
CHAPTER XXX
IT seems strange that the one who was the most
hilarious over the engagement of Marjory and Cole-
man should be Coleman's dragoman who was indeed
in a state bordering on transport. It is not known 
how he learned the glad tidingsbut it is certain that 
he learned them before luncheon. He told all the 
visible employes of the hotel and allowed them to 
know that the betrothal really had been his handi-work 
He had arranged it. He did not make quite 
clear how he had performed this featbut at least he 
was perfectly frank in acknowledging it. 
When some of the students came down to luncheon
they saw him but could not decide what ailed him. 
He was in the main corridor of the hotelgrinning 
from ear to earand when he perceived the students 
he made signs to intimate that they possessed in common 
a joyous secret. " What's the matter with that 
idiot?" asked Coke morosely. " Looks as if his 
wheels were going around too fast." 
Peter Tounley walked close to him and scanned 
him imperturbablybut with care. " What's up
Phidias ? " The man made no articulate reply. He 
continued to grin and gesture. "Pain in oo tummy? 
Mother dead? Caught the cholera? Found out 
that you've swallowed a pair of hammered brass and 
irons in your beer? Saywho are youanyhow? " 
But he could not shake this invincible gleeso he 
went away. 
The dragoman's rapture reached its zenith when 
Coleman lent him to the professor and he was 
commissioned to bring a carriage for four people to the 
door at three o'clock. He himself was to sit on 
the box and tell the driver what was required of 
him. He dashed offhis hat in his handhis hair flying
puffingimportant beyond everythingand apparently 
babbling his mission to half the people he met 
on the street. In most countries he would have 
landed speedily in jailbut among a people who exist 
on a basis of'jibberinghis violent gabble aroused no 
suspicions as to his sanity. Howeverhe stirred 
several livery stables to their depths and set men running 
here and there wildly and for the most part 
futiltiy. 
At fifteen minutes to three o'clocka carriage with 
its horses on a gallop tore around the corner and up 
to the . front of the hotelwhere it halted with the 
pomp and excitement of a fire engine. The dragoman 
jumped down from his seat beside the driver and 
scrambled hurriedly into the hoielin the gloom of 
which hemet a serene stillness which was punctuated 
only by the leisurely tinkle of silver and glass in the 
dining room. For a moment the dragoman seemed 
really astounded out of specch. Then he plunged 
into the manager's room. Was it conceivable that 
Monsieur Coleman was still at luncheon? Yes; in 
factit was true. But the carriagewas at the door! 
The carriage was at the door! The manager
undisturbedasked for what hour Monsieur Coleman had 
been pleased to order a carriage. Three o'clock ! 
Three o'clock? The manager pointed calmly at the 
clock. Very well. It was now only thirteen minutes 
of three o'clock. Monsieur Coleman doubtless would 
appear at three. Until that hour the manager would 
not disturb Monsieur Coleman. The dragoman 
clutched both his hands in his hair and cast a look of 
agony to the ceiling. Great God! Had he accomplished 
the herculean task of getting a carriage for 
four people to the door of the hotel in time for a drive 
at three o'clockonly to meet with this stoninessthis 
inhumanity? Ahit was unendurable? He begged 
the manager; he implored him. But at every word. 
the manager seemed to grow more indifferentmore 
callous. He pointed with a wooden finger at the 
clock-face. In realityit is thusthat Greek meets 
Greek. 
Professor Wainwright and Coleman strolled together 
out of the dining room. The dragoman rushed ecstatically 
upon the correspondent. " OhMeester Coleman! 
The carge is ready !" 
Well, all right,said Colemanknocking ashes 
from his cigar. "Don't be in a hurry. I suppose 
we'll be readypresently." The man was in despair. 
The departure of the Wainwrights and Coleman on 
this ordinary drive was of a somewhat dramatic and 
public natureNo one seemed to know how to prevent 
its being so. In the first placethe attendants 
thronged out en masse for a reason which was plain 
at the time only to Coleman's dragoman. Andrather 
in the backgroundlurked the interested students. 
The professor was surprised and nervous. Coleman 
was rigid and angry. Marjory was flushed and some 
what hurriedand Mrs. Wainwright was as proud as 
an old turkey-hen. 
As the carriage rolled awayPeter Tounley turned 
to his companions and said: " Nowthat's official! 
That is the official announcement! Did you see Old 
Mother Wainwright? Ohmy eyewasn't she puffed 
up ! Saywhat in hell do you suppose all these jay 
hawking bell-boys poured out to the kerb for? Go 
back to your cagesmy good people-" 
As soon as the carriage wheeled into another 
streetits occupants exchanged easier smilesand 
they must have confessed in some subtle way of 
glances that now at last they were upon their own 
missiona mission undefined but earnest to them all. 
Coleman had a glad feeling of being let into the family
or becoming one of them 
The professor looked sideways at him and smiled 
gently. " You knowI thought of driving you to 
some ruinsbut Marjory would not have it. She flatly 
objected to any more ruins. So I thought we would 
drive down to New Phalerum." 
Coleman nodded and smiled as if he were immensely 
pleasedbut of course New Phalerum was to him no 
more nor-less than Vladivostok or Khartoum. 
Neither place nor distance had interest for him. 
They swept along a shaded avenue where the dust lay 
thick on the leaves; they passed cafes where crowds 
were angrily shouting over the news in the little papers; 
they passed a hospital before which wounded 
menwhite with bandageswere taking the sun; then 
came soon to the and valley flanked by gaunt naked 
mountainswhich would lead them to the sea. Sometimes 
to accentuate the dry nakedness of this valley
there would be a patch of grass upon which poppies 
burned crimson spots. The dust writhed out from 
under the wheels of the carriage; in the distance the 
sea appeareda blue half-disc set between shoulders of 
barren land. It would be common to say that Coleman 
was oblivious to all about him but Marjory. On 
the contrarythe parched landthe isolated flame of 
poppiesthe cool air from the seaall were keenly 
known to himand they had developed an extraordinary 
power of blending sympathetically into his 
mood. Meanwhile the professor talked a great deal. 
And as a somewhat exhilarating detailColeman perceived 
that Ms. Wainwright was beaming upon him. 
At New Phalerum-a small collection of pale square 
villas-they left the carriage and strolledby the sea. 
The waves were snarling together like wolves amid 
the honeycomb rocks and from where the blue plane 
sprang level to the horizoncame a strong cold breeze
the kind of a breeze which moves an exulting man or 
a parson to take off his hat and let his locks flutter 
and tug back from his brow. 
The professor and Mrs. Wainwright were left to 
themselves. 
Marjory and Coleman did not speak for a time. It 
might have been that they did not quite know where 
to make a beginning. At last Marjory asked: 
What has become of your splendid horse?
Oh, I've told the dragoman to have him sold as 
soon as he arrives,said Coleman absently. 
 Oh. I'm sorry * * I liked that horse.
Why? 
Oh, because-
Well, he was a fine-Then hetoointerrupted 
himselffor he saw plainly that they had not 
come to this place to talk about a horse. Thereat he 
made speech of matters which at least did not afford 
as many opportunities for coherency as would the 
horse. Marjoryit can't be true * * * Is it true
dearest * * I can hardly believe it. -I-" 
 Oh, I know I'm not nearly good enough for you.
 Good enough for me, dear? 
They all told me soand they were right ! Why
even the American minister said it. Everybody thinks 
it." 
Why, aren 't they wretches To think of them 
saying such a thing! As if-as if anybody could be 
too--
 Do you know-She paused and looked at 
him with a certain timid challenge. " I don't know 
why I feel itbut-sometimes I feel that I've been
I've been flung at your head."
He opened his mouth in astonishment. " Flung at
my head!
She held up her finger. "And if I thought you
could ever believe it ! "
 Is a girl flung at a man's head when her father
carries her thousands of miles away and the man 
follows her all these miles, and at last-
 Her eyes were shining. And you really came to
Greece-on purpose to-to-"
 Confess you knew it all the time! Confess!
The answer was muffled. " Wellsometimes I
thought you didand at other times I thought you-
didn't."
In a secluded covein which the sea-maids once had
playedno doubtMarjory and Coleman sat in silence.
He was below herand if he looked at her he had to
turn his glance obliquely upward. She was staring at
the sea with woman's mystic gazea gaze which men
at once reverence and fear since it seems to look into
the deepsimple heart of natureand men begin to feel
that their petty wisdoms are futile to control these
strange spiritsas wayward as nature and as pure as
naturewild as the play of wavessometimes as unalterable
as the mountain amid the winds; and to
measure themman must perforce use a mathematical
formula.
He wished that she would lay her hand upon his
hair. He would be happy then. If she would only
of her own willtouch his hair lightly with her
fingers-if she would do it with an unconscious air it
would be even better. It would show him that she
was thinking of himeven when she did not know she
was thinking of him.
Perhaps he dared lay his head softly against her knee. 
Did he dare?
As his head touched her kneeshe did not move.
She seemed to be still gazing at the sea. Presently
idly caressing fingers played in his hair near the
forehead. He looked up suddenly lifting his arms.
He breathed out a cry which was laden with a kind of
diffident ferocity. " I haven't kissed you yet-"